#and i needed to stop before i posted all the lyrics
Explore tagged Tumblr posts
Text
Crazy, stupid lovebirds Cupid struck us, now we're falling out. Drove in silence, put on mileage - Five years wasted, I let you down. 'Cause we don't talk about what we know, Holding our egos 'Til we both agree we've had enough. Since we've stopped I can't help but eavesdrop. Holding hands in treetops Used to be our thing 'til we had enough. Two stones skipping, my heart dripping Our hands slipping out of reach. My bed's empty, I've said plenty Now words just fall from the peaks.
#i am way too lazy to format all that.#and i needed to stop before i posted all the lyrics#ā§ļ½„ļ¾ļ½„ļ¾ā§ | ā¾ | : music.#Holding Hands by Quinn XCII ft. Elohim#ā§ļ½„ļ¾ļ½„ļ¾ā§ | ā¾ | : stolitz.#okay to reblog!!
0 notes
Photo
Nice healthy obsession you got there (Patreon)
#Doodles#SCII#Damned#DAX#ZEX#SU#Scribbles for maximum speed and minimum prettiness lol#How! many! layers! deep! can I go!!#I have been well-out from Steven Universe for a heck-while now - stopped around Off-Colors I think? I haven't been back since 2017ish y'see#Something-something pick up Vargas drop off Steven Universe (there was a few months of crossover but it's a whole thing w/e w/e)#Anyway! Lol#It was lurking dormant for This Moment is what I'm getting at#Just needed to stew on SCII for five years and then all the feelings'd come up lol#It is still so funny to me that I drew Max and Dex before ZEX and DAX - whenever things come full circle like this it tickles me#I've already written up a Whole Thing about my alien-faves so that'll be a thing soon enough lol#For now! Silliness! I mean - more silliness lol#Those /are/ ZEX and DAX but?? I guess?? with the body-snatched version but they'd be gems?? I don't know either lol#I put in the caption that DAX would be a pearl but honestly he feels like he'd be an opal or something#Can't say labradorite that's too indulgent but he'd be so pretty! Those hidden depths and flecks of green <3#I feel like ZEX would be something clear and beautiful :) So - not a green quartz lol but something pretty and important!#I dunno I've forgotten many many things about SU gem types haha#Also silly how I put ZEX in the Pearl position - he just Seems It y'know āŖ#I mean Max would too lol#But no DAX is the obvious Pearl here - her songs were always my favourite <3 Discounting that she was always my favourite ahem lol#I have Always Always loved It's Over Isn't It <3 A full mournful song for her ugh it's so gorgeous ā„#I've been trying to learn the Italian version because it is So pretty <3#Thank goodness the comments weren't disabled under the Italian upload so someone was able to post the lyrics#So nice to be able to see them! And the words genuinely flow so beautifully they're really fun to sing ā«
12 notes
Ā·
View notes
Note
Babe you are SO CORRECT about everything youāve ever said about Hum Hallelujah. I finally listened to it and itās been on repeat. I was so pleasantly surprised about the hallelujah melody on the bridge. I am vibing SO HARD. Thank you.
head in my hands. there's another song on that record that rather sarcastically says "this is a love song in my own way" but the thing is. Hum Hallelujah IS. it is a love song in its own way, in the band's own way, and it's so insane that it even exists, like, I know I've said this and it's probably in my FOB tag but. oh my goodness. there is so much love in the fact that that song exists and not only is in the album, but acts as such a touchstone for it (in my opinion). also it makes me want to CRY.
#I feel this need to like. handle hum hallelujah with such care when discussing it. just by nature of what it is#bc it's a breakup song with death. it's unbelievably honest and personal. it's heartbreaking but also so hopeful#but it is. most importantly. a breakup song. with Death itself.#and the first line that would later become a lyric in it that I'm aware of is from... only a few months following the best buy incident??#and FOB has a THEME of personifying death. in like 2016ish pete would say this thing about how death loves you#and your job as a human being is to breath Death's heart#which is. what hum is about in a lot of ways.#ok sorry I'll stop now. I've made all these posts before. I can tag you in sideblog stuff skfnskgnskg#Lu rambles#asks#music#fob#<3
16 notes
Ā·
View notes
Text
Iām only halfway through Royal Bloodās album (I know I should be better. Iāve been slacking music wise *sigh) and itās so much softer sounding than their other albums. I havenāt looked up the lyrics yet since I usually like to do the first listen just as is. Idk how I feel yet, but I do know I Wish I Cared Less is absolutely due for an update. Especially since I have more songs now. I have a very clear ending and itās been the same ending Iāve planned from the beginning. Iām just not sure how Iām getting there yet cause Iāve changed my mind a million times. And though I love this verse I really think it needs to end, I donāt like when things are dragged on too long (Iām looking at you Asian dramas cause is 100+ episodes necessary!?! But also det co. Just end so I can stop caring. End my misery and donāt ship bait me cause that fucking sucks ass. Iāve been betrayed before and Iām still bitter). I opened up the doc after forever yesterday and worked on it a little. Since Iām done with the September prompts early, Iām hopefully gonna dedicate the rest of this month to finishing at least the chapter. I feel like it could end in maybe two more? Iāll be one more step closer to freedom. But that really means I wonāt feel as bad when I start posting the midnights album fic (which I still need to finish tooā¦ it never ends I swear *sigh)
Update: this new fic on ao3 just got me so bad. I have to lie down. I mean Iām already laying down but Omm. I need a moment. Iām telling you CoAi fics written in Chinese just hit different
Update 2: okay now that my Steelers have won and Iām done crying over the win, I can go back to reeling over CoAi. Or I guess shinshi. If you can read fics in Chinese, do yourself a favor and read the latest fic by EvaRosalene cause it is so good! I just finished leaving my comment after thinking about it the whole day after reading it and Iām justā¦ honestly my comment cannot hold a light to the fic, but I had to gush. I pride myself on being a great commenter, even if itās just me rambling a lot. But itās always genuine and itās always me getting in my feels. Especially my long comments, like sorry but I canāt shut up if I really like something. I will let you know it! But anyways, go read the fic. Itās so good!
#cynful babbles#thatās probably why itās taking me longer to get through the album cause itās so soft sounding#I mean Iām not like a heavy metal person but I fell in love with Royal Blood from the music first#which is so rare for me as someone who cares so much about lyrics#but Royal Blood and Glass Animals both got me with the vibes first#I just need to get through the album and pick a song then the chapter should be easier to write#I swear Iām slowly finishing all my posted WIPs before another idea consumes me#Iāve been so good about not starting the fics I daydream but sometimes they test me#today itās the marriage verse. yes I know I wrote one but this one would be canon compliant#update it is now a completely new verse and I canāt stop thinking about it
0 notes
Text
Djungelskog - Oscar Piastri x Teacher! Reader
Summary: Summer break means forcing Oscar to help you get your classroom ready in time for upcoming school year.Ā
Fluff. 2024 season. Pinterest pics
Requested: Yes by anon (here)
There's a little blurb halfway down
F1 Masterlist
āāāā ą¼»š„øą¼ŗ āāāā
yn_ln just posted
liked by oscarpiastri, landonorris and others
yn_ln last day of term. last recess, last day of chalk drawings. iāve had a lovely bunch this year and will miss them loads as they move on. looking forward to a much needed break
681 comments
bestfriend feet on the desk? empty classroom? looks like slacking to me
oscarpiastri canāt wait to spend summer break with youĀ
ā yn_ln itāll be nice to not have to share you with lando
ā landonorris what makes you think you can get away from me
ā georgerussel63 that sounds like a threat, mate
hattiepiastri does this mean youāll have time to take me to the babymetal concert? ācause mum keeps trying to get out of itĀ
ā yn_ln do i have to learn the all the lyrics?Ā
ā hattiepiastri youāre a teacher, learning is in your bloodĀ
ā yn_ln osc, help
ā oscarpiastri no, you chose to befriend her
alexandrasaintmleux omg did the kids do those drawings? š„¹belle
ā yn_ln no, that was landoās drawing
ā landonorris donāt be silly. i canāt draw that well
teacherfriend iāll do my best to look after them next year but i know i canāt compete with the fabulous miss lnĀ
nicolepiastri when can we see miss ln turn to mrs piastri?
ā oscarpiastri this is why i donāt come homeĀ
ā nicolepiastri no, you donāt come home because yn does your laundry nowĀ
oscarpiastri just posted
liked by yn_ln, danielricciardo and others
oscarpiastri first part of the season done. first GP victory. first broken bone. looking forward to a much needed break for the rib
4,811 comments
landonorris omg stop copying your girlfriendās caption style
ā yn_ln he canāt help it. heās obsessed with me
ā oscarpiastri true
ā user1 let us innnnn
user2 does a broken bone mean heāll win the next race
ā yn_ln only if i'm there
charles_leclerc and what have you been doing to break a bone?
ā oscarpiastri helping my girlfriend empty a classroom. thereās a lot of books in there
mclaren enjoy the break. we canāt wait to have you back racing and refreshedĀ
ā user3 heās literally only just left the mtc, give him a minute of peace
ā yn_ln donāt worry. iāll be putting them in a time outĀ if they try and take him
āāāā ą¼»š„øą¼ŗ āāāā
yn_ln just posted
liked by logansargeant, oscarpiastri and others
yn_ln my happy place. quick lunch break. dragging my big strong man to carry stuff for me in ikeaĀ
814 comments
oscarpiastri before that bear, i was your big strong man :(Ā
ā yn_ln you broke a rib. youāre only so useful. the bear canāt breakĀ
ā oscarpiastri it can if i pull itās head off
ā yn_ln you were a biter, werenāt you?
ā hattiepiastri yes
landonorris why wasnāt i invited
landonorris sushi š¤¢
ā yn_ln this is why you werenāt invitedĀ
ā landonorris stop trying to push me outĀ
ā oscarpiastri i see you practically 10 months out of the year. she can have me for one afternoon
charles_leclerc oh i love ikea furniture! can i help?
ā yn_ln of course you can. we have snacks as well
ā landonorris blatant favouritismĀ
ā yn_ln yesĀ
danielricciardo omg the djungelskog. when can i meet him?
ā oscarpiastri heās called skoggie for shortĀ
ā nicolepiastri the closest iāll get to grandkids
āāāā ą¼»š„øą¼ŗ āāāā
Oscar grinned at the face filling up the front of his phone, sliding the button across to answer it.Ā
āHe-ā
āBabe, I need more glue.ā You exploded, cutting him off before he could even greet you properly. āOh, and paper.ā
ā-And I broke the scissors. But the good news is, Lan said he could come and help so could you actually pick up 3 pairs of scissors, please?āĀ
āSweetheart, breathe.ā Oscar reminded you, a soft laugh echoing down the phone. āIāve literally only been gone for 10 minutes. All we needed was milk. How did you manage to rope Lando into this?āĀ
āRope? He was practically hanging by the phone waiting for one of us to call. I asked if he could spare a few minutes - just to give you a hand moving the desk - and he was already in the car on his way.ā
āAt least heās preparing us for our own children one day,ā joked Oscar.
āHow have you got paint in your curls? I didnāt ask you to paint because I knew you couldn't be trusted to paint,ā the exasperated voice of his girlfriend echoed down the empty school hallways. Light radiated from a singular doorway at the end of the hallway, beckoning him forward.Ā
āEvery year, I deal with a class of 30 five year olds, experiencing freedom from their parents for the first time. And yet I feel like I need to watch you more than I do them.āĀ
āBut it was just sat on the side, with the lid off!.ā
āSo you felt the need to somehow stick your entire hand in it?āĀ
Oscar leant against the doorframe, watching affectionately as you used a wet wipe to get the paint off of Lando as best as possible. Despite the curly-haired Brit being old than you, it didnāt stop the caring instinct that came with being a first-year teacher.Ā
One wall was painted a soft lilac whilst the other three had been given fresh coats of white. The chairs and tables had been organised into little groups to help you see each childās face from the front of the class, and the drawers were freshly stocked with stationery. A little rug and some bean bags were set up in the corner for the story nook, and all that was left to do was start hanging up the wall deco.Ā
āThere?āĀ
āLittle higher,ā you remarked, after faking a contemplative pause.Ā
āNow?ā
āLittle higher,ā you leaned back to really take in the view. āOh, yeah, thatās good.ā
The white t-shirt sat snugly on his strained biceps as he held the board up over his head. The hem rode up as he stretched, revealing a nice sliver of tan, muscular back. Nibbling on your bottom lip, you sighed deeply at the sight before you. How easy would it be to reach and smack-
āBabe!ā Oscar called again, turning around to check on you. āI canāt hold this- Are you checking me out? Youāre supposed to be telling me where this goes.āĀ
āYou shouldnāt look that good then.ā
Clambering down from the ladder, he placed the thick board down on the nearest table and sauntered over to you. Placing his hands on your hips, he pulled you flush against him. Pressing a kiss to your nose, he trailed his lips down to your jaw and then under your ear.Ā
āHow about we call it a night? Thisāll all be here tomorrow, and you can appreciate the view without the t-shirt.āĀ
When you didnāt smile at his enticing offer, Oscar pulled down to look at you. Brushing a strand of hair back from your face, he frowned at the furrow between your brows.Ā
āWhatās up, sweetheart?āĀ
āIām just worried that itās not enough, you knowā¦ā
Oscar turned his head slightly, drinking in all the work you had put together. The butterflies made out of patterned cards that you had spent hours scouring stores for. The paper flowers decorating the whiteboard that you had spent days stressing about. The stack of drawers with each student's name labelled across the front. The days of work that had gone into ensuring that each little person that crossed your threshold was as happy as they could be. A teacher that cared.Ā
āI know theyāre only five, and theyāve never had another classroom to go off but- I donāt know. I just want them to feel comfortable and safe, and happy. I donāt want them to feel like theyāre in an institution designed to make them sit in a seat for six hours.āĀ
āLook at all the effort youāve put in so far. Without all the lesson planning and actual caring youāll do when those kids come under your care. Did you ever have a classroom like this growing up? No. Neither did I. You know why, because nobody cares as much as you do.ā
Straightening, he swung you up into his arms, bridal style. A cheeky grin pulled at the corners of his mouth when you shrieked in laughter.Ā
āNow, letās go home, Skoggie is waiting for us. We'll grab some dinner and take a bath together. What do you say?āĀ
āOkay, Piastri. Take me home or lose me forever.āĀ
oscarpiastri just posted
liked by mclaren, arthur_leclerc and others
oscarpiastri dating a teacher means spending summer break painting, cutting, glueing and then being told āitās quiet timeā whilst she decompresses from watching you do all the workĀ
3,381 comments
yn_ln you wouldnāt stop talking and i was trying to refresh my barbie knowledge
ā user1 princess and the pauper?
ā yn_ln absolutelyĀ
ā landonorris iām the erika to her annaliseĀ
ā oscarpiastri whoa, you help with one classroom and think you can take my coveted spot?Ā
yn_ln plus it was hard work taking in the viewĀ
ā oscarpiastri i had a pretty good view afterwards šš«§
user2 idk why but the paint hands make me wanna scream
ā user3 omg i wonder if they made the little hand canvas things loads of couples have done
ā oscarpiastri we did! theyāre now hung up over our bed
maxverstappen1 think you can make some more of those flowers for Pās room?Ā
ā oscarpiastri iāve got paper cuts on top of paper cuts. don't ask me to do more
ā yn_ln iāve got loads left over. she can pick the ones she likes bestĀ
user4 the matching pjs š„° this couple has my whole heart
ā yn_ln he also has mine!Ā
user5 i love when oscarās insta has something other than racing on it
ā user6 i want yn to let us onto hers so bad. i would sell my soul for the couples content on there
āāāā ą¼»š„øą¼ŗ āāāā
yn_ln just posted
liked by oscarpiastri, charles_leclerc and others
yn_ln and itās done. one week of relaxation left before the new term starts. i canāt wait to meet my new bunch of kids. a huge thank you to my constant kid @/landonorris for his help and mess. and an even bigger gratitude to osc. without you, this never wouldāve been finished. you helped not only physically but mentally. my rockĀ š
1,681 comments
user7 omg am i seeing things? is this actually oscarās yn?Ā
oscarpiastri you did an amazing job š¤ enjoy your last week off
ā yn_ln you better not win any more races without me
ā mclaren you know he canāt promise thatĀ
landonorris maybe if you had been my teacher, i wouldāve stayed in school
ā carlossainz55 doubtfulĀ
maxverstappen1 P canāt wait to be in your class
ā yn_ln and iām looking forward to being her teacher. although it might be hard to fight the urge to show favouritismĀ
hattiepiastri ew, donāt be cute online
ā oscarpiastri you're just mad that i'm her favourite piastri
ā hattiepiastri we both know that's a lie
ā nicolepiastri it's me
user8 um, can she be my teacher, please?
charles_leclerc i think this is a sign that i need to have children so that you can become their teacherĀ
ā alexandrasaintmleux letās stick with leo for nowĀ
ā nicolepiastri i keep trying to convince oscar and yn. youāll be next, donāt worryĀ
ā oscarpiastri you have Skoggie. you donāt need any other grandkids
user9 weāre in! everyone say thank you oscar for making her come off priv
ā user10 their couple content is healing my soul
āāāā ą¼»š„øą¼ŗ āāāā
Request for F1 fics are open.
A/N: Apologies for the delay in getting these out. I've been super busy making jumpers for my upcoming family Disney trip
Tag list
@peachiicherries @rosecentury @c-losur3 @heavy-vettel @evie-119
#formula 1#f1#formula 1 smau#f1 smau#formula 1 social media au#f1 social media au#social media au imagine#formula 1 imagine#formula 1 headcanon#formula 1 drabble#formula 1 one shot#formula 1 fluff#formula 1 x reader#f1 imagine#f1 headcanon#f1 drabble#f1 one shot#f1 fluff#f1 x reader#oscar piastri#oscar piastri imagine#oscar piastri drabble#oscar piastri headcanon#oscar piastri one shot#oscar piastri fluff#oscar piastri smau#oscar piastri x reader
2K notes
Ā·
View notes
Note
HI!! Hope you are well! I was wondering if you could do a smau, ferrari!reader (daughter of the ferrari family, like hier to the company? Idk how to explain lol) x max verstappen, where they have known eachother for a while through Jos and stuff, and they are really close, but everyone thinks it's just because they are friends? And then max hard launched reader because everyone is shipping her with one of the ferrari boys? Thanks! <3
hard launch ā§ max verstappen
max verstappen x ferrari! fem! reader
masterlist
had so much fun writing this! thank you for sending in your request anon <3 (requested)
[twitter]
[instagram]
yn_ferrari
liked by charles_leclerc and 1.830.616 others
yn_ferrari eat pasta drive fasta š
view all 1.828 comments
scuderiaferrari See you tomorrow boss š«”
username mother is mothering more than she has ever mothered before š
charles_leclerc bet you were drunk after drinking that amount of wine
ā³ yn_ferrari stop spreading lies
ā³ username never beating the couple allegations
ā³ username i ship itš„°
username āCHAā for CHArles?!??! š„ŗš„ŗ
ā³ username GIRLšš
maxverstappen1 š«
ā³ yn_ferrari papa asked you to let charles/carlos win for onceš„¹šš¼
ā³ maxverstappen1 As much as I love papa, Iām afraid I canāt do thatš
ā³ yn_ferrari nicorosberg please do your magic
username IS THAT MAX IN THE 3RD PICTURE?!
ā³ username itās charlesš
yn_ferrari
liked by carlossainz55 and 1.288.711 others
yn_ferrari always a meaningful race at monza! so glad to be back and see all the tifosi that came to show their supportā¤ļø congrats to carlossainz55 for the podium! (and to maxverstappen1 for breaking the record š)
view all 1.172 comments
maxverstappen1 Thank you, Y/Nš
ā³ yn_ferrari itās all your fault! nicorosberg šāāļø
ā³ nicorosberg Forza Ferrariā¤ļø
ā³ yn_ferrari youāre welcome, i guess you deserved itš¤·āāļø
ā³ username is it just me?? but i feel like y/n is so rude to max sometimes :/
ā³ username girl chillšš thatās just how they are, theyāve been friends for over twenty years now
scuderiaferrari Lovely to have you and bossman here! Please visit oftenā¤ļø
ā³ yn_ferrari i think i still have to recover, feels like my hand is broken by how hard papa squeezed it throughout the race
username āferrari fans always in spain (without the s)ā SO TRUE š©
charles_leclerc Are we still on for the family dinner tonight
ā³ yn_ferrari youāve been uninvited, you almost gave papa a heart attack
ā³ carlossainz55 ššš
ā³ yn_ferrari you too mr. sainz
ā³ carlossainz55 THATS NOT FAIR
username i just love the banter between charles and y/nš i want what they have
[message]
[instagram]
maxverstappen1
liked by yn_ferrari and 4.716.109 others
maxverstappen1 You still make my heart beat fast, Ferrariā¤ļø
tagged: yn_ferrari
view all 3.166 comments
yn_ferrari i thought i told you to keep it PGš” 5 SECOND PENALTY FOR MAX VERSTAPPEN
yn_ferrari unoriginal caption taken from song lyrics?! 183621 SECOND PENALTY!!
ā³ maxverstappen1 I love youš„°
ā³ yn_ferrari love you too š®āšØ
username SCREAMING CRYING WTFš
username i canāt see iām blindšµ
redbullracing SLEEPING WITH THE ENEMY?! š®
ā³ scuderiaferrari FORZA FERRARI SIEMPRE!!!š
papaferrari Please delete
papaferrari yn_ferrari I think we need to have a little chat
ā³ yn_ferrari iām not the one who posted the picturesš
ā³ papaferrari Okayā¦ Please tell Max not to come to the dinner tonight šš
ā³ maxverstappen1 WHAT NO, I CAN EXPLAIN
username b-b-b-but charles + y/n? š„²
ā³ username we lostš
username a good day to be a ferrstappen shipper
ā³ username WAR IS OVER
username THE 2ND PIC I-
charles_leclerc Took you guys long enoughš
yn_ferrari
liked by maxverstappen1 and 3.921.551 others
yn_ferrari some things never change
tagged: maxverstappen1
view all 2.419 comments
username okay i guess theyāre cute or whateverš
maxverstappen1 ā¤ļøš
papaferrari Can you just give this old man a breakā¦
ā³ username i volunteer to be your daughter š§āāļø
username fell to my knees in the middle of walmart
charles_leclerc 20+ years of this š«
ā³ yn_ferrari š¬š¬š¬
ā³ maxverstappen1 šŖšŖšŖ
username i just need to know papa ferrariās current favorite grid son, given all the situations happening right nowš
ā³ yn_ferarri will always and forever be @/sebastianvettel
ā³ charles_leclerc WOW
ā³ carlossainz55 WOW
ā³ maxverstappen1 WOW
ā³ kimimatiasraikonnen Wow.
ā³ sebastianvettel ššš
_
pictures (c) to pinterest and instagram
#max verstappen#formula 1#f1#max verstappen x reader#max verstappen x you#max verstappen x y/n#max verstappen fanfic#max verstappen imagine#max verstappen one shot#max verstappen social media#max verstappen smau#f1 x reader#f1 x you#f1 x y/n#f1 fanfic#f1 imagine#f1 one shot#f1 social media#f1 smau#archiverstappen
5K notes
Ā·
View notes
Note
congrats on 1k again mel š¤ i'm so proud of u!!
i'm requesting for ur event: the lyrics "you make me wanna fall in love" from "juno" by sabrina, and the driver is oscar piastri
ą±Øą§ MAKE YOU FALL IN LOVE ā§Ė. OP81
ą±Øą§ PART OF MY 1K EVENT & my short n' sweet series (not posted yet) ą±Øą§
summary ā you said it was casual, but you both knew it wasnāt. he liked to tell people that heās certainly not in love with you, so maybe you just had to make him fall in love.
a/n ā thank you so much for your constant support mlš„¹ im not too happy with how this turned out, but i hope you enjoy reading anyway <3 based on the song ājunoā by sab!
warnings ā kinda smutty?? jealous!oscar, making out, very suggestive, hints of angst, english isnāt my first language, not proofread
It really wasnāt your fault.
You decided to keep it casual as to not get him into any drama, so that people know his focus was keen on racing - becoming a world champion and whatnot - and also for your sake, because the hate, if you werenāt used to it, really could become unbearable, and the last thing Oscar wanted was for you to have to deal with any of that, you were just way too precious to him for that. So the decision was made. No strings attached.
Stupid, right? No strings attached is something to settle on before being all the way into it. Because at that point of your relationship, there was no way to keep it casual anymore. The only way was to take a few things that had been said two or three times too often back. To leave it all behind and really only do those things for āurgent needsā . No more spending the night or cooking together or meeting up without the friend group or sneaking away from said friend group just so he could finally rip the dress you had been teasing him with all night right off of you. But he had other plans, he seemed to just keep going with it. Telling you how much he missed you every time he was back from the long weekends, repeating the same three words over and over again as he makes his way down your thighs, kissing every clothed and unclothed spot he could reach from under you.
The first time it happened it was simply an accident, at least thatās what you told everyone. At least thatās what you told yourselves. But your touch and perfume still lingered even after a week, so the next time you saw each other at a birthday party of one of your mutual friends, Oscar couldnāt keep his hands off you either. Confessions of being attracted were spoken out loud and the only thing keeping you from taking it farther was nothing more than a mental holdback. You were scared of the public. He was scared to see you hurt because of that.
After a weekend during summer break spent together you asked him to finally decide on where to go on from this. He blurted out that heās not in love, so there was no reason for things to get complicated. Your breath hitched. Casual hookups was what he said. Friends with benefits, you chuckled, seemingly angreeing with him as to not make this situation any weirder, even if it hurt just a tiny bit. But he was right. You had a different idea of a perfect life than he had. Racing was his passion, being in the spotlight was part of the sport, and you couldnāt even handle having to hold presentations in class because you hated being the center of attention. You two were just too different.
So yes. It is his fault! Because if heās really, after all these lovey-dovey moment shared, still not in love ā like you admittedly were ā then he should stop acting like he did. Why would he get you flowers every few weeks? Why would he gift you a whole vacation with your best friend including hotel, trips and things a sane person wouldnāt even ask for for your birthday, and the rest of your friends would only get a normal birthday card and occasionally whatever small thing they had wished for? If you were really just casual, then why did he treat you as if none of this was ever just casual at all? Why did he treat you like his girlfriend if he so confidently stated that heās not in love with you just months ago?
He couldnāt expect you not to want him to fall for you too if he was the one who made you fall for him in the first place. As if the ācasualā sex wasnāt enough already, he just had to do the most romantic shit for you as to not let you get over him at all. He wanted to play with your head, he made it obvious. Too many mixed signs, too many actions done but too little words said. Lucky for you and for him, two can play the game.
If he was sooo sure heās not in love with you, which he just had to be, maybe you just had to make him realize his loss if he ever lost you. You had to make sure he knew that you were desired also by men who werenāt him, and since itās his fault you fell for him in the first place, he should be the one who has to face he consequences of not loving you back.
In other words, a little jealousy clearly wouldnāt hurt him.
You were getting ready in the bathroom of your apartment together with your best friend, ājunoā by Sabrina Carpenter playing in the background while you gossiped about whatever came to mind ā including Oscar and you. It was a secret to everybody else, but not to her. She was the one you cried to after Oscar told you he didnāt have feelings for you.
You finished up your makeup with some lipgloss, and once you were final,y content with your accessories and outfits, you made your way over to your friendās, jackās, birthday. Everybody was there, including Oscar. And Lando. His only ally and his biggest rival. If that didnāt make him crack, then nothing would, but you decided to try, at least. Lando and you got along alright already when you had only just met, and he was the first man to point out that Oscar and you arenāt just friends, right?
So when you suddenly put your hand on his arm, slowly rubbing up and down his biceps, he was confused at first, and then caught up on your quick nod in Oscarās direction while holding eye contact with him. Lando didnāt mean to do him any harm, but as much as he loved his teammate, he would never be one to turn down an opportunity to mess with him like this, especially not if he knew it would, at last, make Oscar snap so he didnāt have to listen to his hopeless whining about his relationship with you being oh so complicated. Just ball up and confess, man.
It was innocent at first. Just simple touches, your hand on his chest for just a tiny second because you needed something to steady yourself on as your reached behind him to grab your drink from the small table the couch stood in front of, or his arm around your waist when you all stood next to each other to take a round of shots. Lando was certainly amused and your best friend was winking and giggling at you the whole night, seemingly loving your plan, because Oscar was definitely reacting.
His blood was boiling and he wanted to punch that smug look right off of Landoās face. How dare he touch you when he knew that Oscar, his own teammate, loved you?
Oscar thought it was better like this. Playing pretend instead of facing the truth, and he was pretty damn good at doing so. He was sure you believed him when he said that he doesnāt want your relationship to include anything other than moments of lust, he thought it was easier that way. He thought it would make things less complicated, thought he could live his life without having to put you in any danger, live his life without needing you by his side every second of his damned life if he just put some boundaries. Surprise! It only made things worse, plus apparently, guys seemed to think you were available now, thought they could have you like only he can. And it made him fucking furious.
So when you stood up to pour yourself another drink in the kitchen, he followed, of course not before shooting the other driver for McLaren a death glare. Lando sighed and leanded back in his seat, happy to see your man finally making a real move. He hoped so, at least. Oscar closed the door after entering. It was only you two now.
āFancy another beer?ā You asked calmly, but the feeling in your stomach was far from calm. This could end in complete rejection, maybe he could see right through your faƧade and thought you were childish for doing this? But how could you not?! Oscar himself made you do it with his mix of signs every damn time you saw each other!
He shook his head.
The tension between you was palpable as he watched your every move, back turned to him. You felt awkward, but tried to ignore it. The light was dim, and you could still feel the bass vibrating through the floor and the walls coming from the speakers in the living room. Was music this loud even allowed at this hour?
You finished pouring yourself some more champagne when you saw him walking over to you in the reflection of the glass cupboard in front of you. You sucked in a breath, not daring to say anything, feeling slightly hazy from the alcohol youāve drunken in the past few hours already. His cologne became starker as he stepped closer to you, eyes closed as you let the familiar smell of him take over you completely. You only opened them again once you realized he caged you between himself and the counter, pressing himself against your behind. He started softly kissing down your neck behind your ear, almost tickling you with how light his lips felt against your hot skin. You wanted this, you wanted him. But his touch wasnāt nearly enough, you wanted all of him, and not just his body. Every yet so little interaction you had during the evening left you with butterflies going crazy in your tummy, yet he never seemed affected, not until Lando came into view. Did he really only want your body and not more?
āWhat were you doing with him, y/n?ā
Nothing but a moan left your mouth as he gently bit into your skin, sucking on your sweet spot as you subconsciously rubbed up against him. You didnāt even want to reply, you just wanted him to keep caressing your skin with his mouth. āTell me what you were doing with Lando, huh, baby? What were you thinking?ā
āOscar I-ā
āKeep talking or Iāll stop,ā he whispered as he made his way down your back and then back up your shoulder, kissing and mouthing at every spot. Thankfully your best friend had convinced you to wear the backless top, you thought.
You huffed. This felt so humiliating, but you couldnāt keep going like this, not when he makes you feel like this and then leaves like nothing ever happened. You lived a lie and it was time to stop.
āI was trying to make you jealous so that you would finally stop and do something!ā
Oscarās furrowed his eyebrows and stopped in his tracks, hands still on you. What were you talking about The tension came crashing down onto your body once again, his doing not distracting you anymore. You seemed to want to have this conversation, and Oscar could easily put some of his lust away in moments like these. You didnāt get a reply, the cue for you to turn around and face him. You were still caged between him and the counter, his hands steady on either side of you now as he leaned down to look at you. you couldnāt focus like this, not with him so close to you and with the alcohol running through your body like blood. You looked up at him with doe eyes, prettily batting your lashes even if your mascara was slightly smudged already.
āStop what? Talk to me, please. I didnāt like seeing you with him,ā he looked concerned. Worried even, worried about what he might have done wrong. He wanted to be with you, keep you as his, so why would you want to stop being exactly that?
āWhy donāt you love me?ā You whispered, tears forming in your eyes. You hated it, but it was inevitable. The confrontation was overwhelming you anyway, and being under the influence managed to make it a lot worse. Your hands were all shaky and so was your every breath as you anticipated his reaction, expecting rejection but still hoping for more.
āI- What? Why would you think that?ā
āMaybe because you literally said so?ā
āUhm, okay fair point. Listen y/n,ā he sighed, and you could practically hear your heartbeat throbbing inside your chest. He thought for a second, but didnāt say a thing. Instead, he grabbed your face and kissed you like never before, he kissed you with more than just passion, he kissed you with love. his fingers wiped away a tear that had rolled down your face, kissing and holding you as gently as he could. āDonāt cry on me, y/n, please donāt,ā he begged as he now kissed down your cleavage, leaving lovebites on your collarbones. āWas just being stupid, didnāt wanna hurt you baby, thought long distance is too hard,ā he said something, anything to make you understand that the only reason he didnāt confess was because he was scared of his life not being compatible with yours, and not because he didnāt love you.
You smiled into the kiss once he reached your lips again. Youād have to talk about it more tomorrow morning after taking some aspirin, you knew, after all, that youād go back home with him. It wasnāt enough to make it official, you werenāt boyfriend and girlfriend, but you finally had the guarantee that he felt the same way, that he loved you just like you did him.
Oscar swore himself at that exact moment, when he felt you smiling while his lips were dancing against yours, that he would never make you feel so unloved again. It wasnāt his intention in the first place, but seeing your beautiful eyes filled with tears because of him made his heart shatter, and he never wants to see you like that again, not if he was the reason for your pain. And even though you did have to make him realize through making him jealous, you certainly didnāt have to make him fall in love with you.
Because he already was.
ą±Øą§ general taglist / sns taglist ::
@norrisdriver / @1655clean
#oscar piastri#oscar piastri x reader#oscar piastri x you#lando norris x y/n#oscar piastri smut#op81#op81 x reader#op81 imagine#oscar piastri fluff#oscar piastri angst#oscar piastri x y/n#lando norris fluff#smut#f1 imagine#f1 fanfic#f1 x reader#f1#formula one x reader#oscar piastri imagine#juno#sabrina carpenter#oscar piastri x lando norris#lando norris x reader#formula 1#lando norris#oscar piastri fic#oscar piastri fanfic#short ān sweet#ą±Øą§ melās 1k#ą±Øą§ melās short ān sweet series
573 notes
Ā·
View notes
Note
oo for the lovesick!lando mini smau prompts what about him commenting wedding vows or something sexual on just about every post that contains yn even if its not something he posted , like hamlintomshaderoom posts yn crossing the street and hes practically proposing in comments
authorās note: hi!! so this is in the toxic!y/n and lovesick!lando universe so this is my warning that it isnāt a healthy relationship. this is an au and if toxic fictional relationships are not for you, please donāt read! this is a joke au <3
āāāāāā ļ½„ ļ½”ļ¾ā: *.ā½ .* :āļ¾. āāāāāā
liked by landonorris, land0.mov, lando.jpg and 1,928,091 others.
ham1ltonshaderoom: musician yn yln seen in the streets of manhattan as she does some shopping in the city. she was surrounded by fans before being escorted away to safety by security. this is her first appearance since the release of her controversial self-titled hit album. thoughts?
view all 287,928 comments
user1: HERE BEFORE LANDO š
landonorris: LOVE IT
landonorris: GORGEOUS
landonorris: SHOW STOPPING
landonorris: SALIVATING !!! ONLY SHE CAN DO THAT
landonorris: SHEāS SOOOOOOO š»š»š»š»š»
landonorris: WEDDING NOW!!!! š
-> ham1ltonshaderoom: stop camping out in our comments. we will block you.
user2: the way he literally is obsessed with yn
-> user3: like bro MOVE!!!! weāre obsessed with yn too š
-> user4: itād be cute if it wasnāt cringe
user5: lando norris please can you not text her this
-> landonorris: she blocked me
-> landonorris: temporary setback
-> landonorris: still together!!!
-> user6: need to be as delusional as you. need to get on whatever youāre on rn šš
user7: lando still being whipped after the release of P4THETIC! is insane!!!!!!
-> user8: like she wrote a number one song about how much of a loser you are and youāre still simping š need her badly. i just know sheād change my life.
āāāāāā ļ½„ ļ½”ļ¾ā: *.ā½ .* :āļ¾. āāāāāā
Original Post:
r/AmItheAsshole
Posted by u/p4throwaway1234
AITA for not breaking up with my girlfriend after she wrote a song about how pathetic I am?
okay so, throwaway because this is kind of embarrassing. my (24M) girlfriend (23F) is a singer-songwriter, and recently she released a song. itās super catchy and doing really well, but itāsā¦ definitely about me. she doesnāt say my name, but the lyrics are about how sheās dating this āpathetic, lovesick foolā who āworships the ground she walks onā and āthinks heās a prince when heās really just a jester.ā
hereās the thing: i honestly didnāt care š¤·. i know iām kind of obsessed with her, and yeah, i get clingy sometimes. itās a joke between us, and i thought that was her way of being playful. i even posted the song on my socials when it dropped because i was proud of her.
but my friends are all saying itās humiliating and disrespectful, and i should break up with her. now sheās upset because she found out theyāve been telling me this, and she blocked me on everything. i just want to know if iām the asshole for not immediately dumping her like my friends think i should.
Top Comments:
[deleted]:
āA lovesick fool who worships the ground she walks onā? Bro, she doesnāt respect you. YTA for staying with someone who thinks youāre pathetic.
u/relationshipguru420:
bro, read your own post. she wrote a whole song about YOU being PATHETIC. and youāre still simping? get a grip.
u/toomuchdrama69:
INFO: Is she still blocked? Because if she wrote a whole diss track about you and blocked you, I think the relationship is over.
u/throwawaydetective:
Waitā¦ is this about who I think it is? If it is, thereās no way this guy doesnāt know.
u/relationshipwreckage:
Dude, she literally called you a jester. Itās giving clown.
u/sadboiforlife:
yta. if my gf wrote a song like that and then got mad when ppl told me to leave her, iād be out. respect yourself, my guy.
u/wedoresearch:
sounds like sheās making money off your humiliation. yta for staying in a toxic relationship.
OPās Update:
(two days later)
u/p4throwaway1234
UPDATE: we talked it out and weāre back together. š
so after all the drama, we talked and sorted things out. she said she didnāt mean to hurt me with the songāitās just her way of expressing herself. and honestly? i get it. i love her creativity, even if itās at my expense sometimes. i told her iām not listening to my friends anymore, and weāre stronger than ever now. thanks for the advice, everyone! š
Comments on the Update:
u/relationshipwreckage:
WHAT?
u/toomuchdrama69:
bro.
u/wedoresearch:
this has to be satire.
u/sadboiforlife:
you have got to be kidding me.
OPās Replies:
u/p4throwaway1234:
nah, weāre solid. it was all a misunderstanding. she didnāt mean it in a bad way, and we laughed about it.
u/sadboiforlife:
she BLOCKED you.
u/p4throwaway1234:
yeah, but it was just temporary. weāre good now. everyone fights sometimes!!
u/relationshipwreckage:
she made a song calling you pathetic and somehow thatās okay?
u/p4throwaway1234:
itās art. sheās passionate. iām her muse.
u/yikesmcgee:
š i canāt. you deserve better, king.
u/throwaway1234:
yes and sheās the best. ā¤ļø
u/toomuchdrama69:
no, bro, youāre delusional.
u/p4throwaway1234:
nah, just in love. š
u/wedoresearch:
canāt wait for the next song called ST1LL P4THETIC.
u/p4throwaway1234:
and iād stream it.
u/relationshipwreckage:
you canāt save him.
u/sadboiforlife:
fr. heās too far gone.
āāāāāā ļ½„ ļ½”ļ¾ā: *.ā½ .* :āļ¾. āāāāāā
#jaydeās works ā#toxic aus#lando norris x black reader#lando norris smau#lando norris x y/n#lando norris x reader#lando norris x you#lando norris imagine#lando x reader#f1 smau#formula one x black reader#formula one smau#f1 scenario#f1 driver x reader#ln4 smau#ln4 fic#ln4 x reader#ln4 x y/n#ln4 imagine
454 notes
Ā·
View notes
Text
you put a spell on me (one-shot)
summary: hugh attends a masquerade-themed party and you capture his attention the moment you step into the building. pairing: hugh jackman x fem! reader content warnings: smut (18+, mdni), fingering, oral - m receiving, multiple orgasms (from reader), missionary (legs over hughās shoulders obvi), doggy style, cowgirl, light spanking, unprotected p in v sex (be safe folks!), creampie , no use of y/n. word count: 5.2k a/n: so after all the shit thatās happened in the last twenty four hours, I just needed to write something and Hughās most recent post is the inspiration of this story. song lyrics are in italics btw. hope you all enjoy! this is purely fictional! i mean no disrespect to hugh jackman. song: you put a spell on me by austin giorgio
A masquerade ball.Ā
Hugh was speaking with Ryan and Blake when someone caught the corner of his eye. Turning to look in your direction, he feels his breath catch in his throat at the sight of you descending the stairs to the main dance floor.Ā
Everyone else in this ballroom was either dressed in tones of black, white, and gold, but youā¦ the color of your deep wine red dress adds just the right amount of color to this room. He canāt help but let his eyes take in your frame - the gown trails behind you so elegantly and serene as you walk, an a-line cut with a slit that reveals your leg, an empire waist that clings to every curve, and the slightly puffy sleeves of your dress makes you look so angelic. When you turn slightly, he takes note of the open back as well, biting his lower lip.Ā
Thereās a familiarity to you, that maybe heās seen you before, maybe even talked to you before too. Hugh watches your eyes sweep the area and when your eyes meet his, he lets the corner of his lips turn upwards and then he sees you bite your lower lip, returning his smile with one of your own.Ā
But youāre wearing a masquerade mask, just like he is, just like everyone else in this room is. He canāt tell if he knows you, canāt decide if he should just go up to you and strike up a conversation because if he could hear your voice, itāll at least give him some idea of who you might be.Ā
Hugh has to peel his eyes away from you for a moment, turning his attention back to Ryan whoās staring at him with a big grin.Ā
āWhat?ā Hugh asks, bringing a hand up to adjust the mask on his face.Ā
āYou gonna talk to her?āĀ
āI donāt know her,ā Hugh admits. āOr at least I donāt think I do.āĀ
āWell, go and find out.ā Blake says with a smile, gently nudging him with her arm.Ā
āYeah?ā Hugh asks. āYou think it wonāt be awkward?āĀ
āWell, what was awkward was watching you stare at her like you wanted something, if you get what I mean,ā Ryan teases.Ā
Hugh rolls his eyes and lets out a quiet chuckle. He runs a hand through his hair and then straightens out his bow tie as he nods at Ryan and Blake before he leaves the table in search of you.Ā
Hugh scans the entire room, trying to catch a glimpse of your red dress in the sea of black, white and gold, but he canāt seem to find you. He places his hands in his pockets as he continues to walk casually throughout the room, stopping every now and then to talk with someone he knows. Even in the midst of the conversations, Hughās eyes still search for you.Ā
Just one glimpse, he tells himself. Hugh just needs to see the color of your dress and then heāll be able to get to you.Ā
He excuses himself from another conversation and then decides to walk towards the bar. Hugh sighs to himself, not having found you since you first stepped into the building. He takes the champagne glass from the bartender and then turns his gaze back to the entire room. Very briefly, does he see a glimpse of your smile. His eyes move lower and notices the color of your dress.Ā
Itās you, finally.Ā
Taking a deep breath, Hugh takes another glass of champagne and walks in your direction. It takes less than ten seconds to get to you, the person you had been talking to leaving you alone conveniently as he moves to stand next to you.Ā
āRefill?ā Hugh asks quietly, handing you the glass of champagne.Ā
You smile up at him and Hugh feels his heart race even faster. You donāt say anything, instead you just give him a thankful nod and take the glass of champagne from him, your fingers brushing against his.Ā
āIām Hugh,ā he says with a small smile.Ā
āI know,ā you finally tell him.Ā
Your voice is quiet and he canāt tell if heās heard it before, so he leans in closer. Hugh can hear your breath hitch and it gives him just the right amount of confidence to ask you a question.Ā
āAnd you? Whatās your name?āĀ
You lift the glass of champagne to your lips and take a small sip. āWell, whatās the fun in that if I just tell you,ā you tease, whispering quietly.Ā
Hugh smiles and pulls back to look down at you. All of a sudden, no one else in this room matters but you. Everyone fades into the background and all he can see is you.Ā
āOkay,ā he chuckles. āWell, do we know each other? Have we met before?āĀ
āWeāve met before, yes.āĀ
Hugh bites the inside of his cheek but he canāt focus. He just wants to reach out and slowly lift the mask from your eyes so he can get a clear view of who you are.Ā
āHave we worked together?ā Hugh asks.Ā
āI think I should be offended that you canāt tell who I am,ā you laugh quietly.Ā
Your laugh. The way your smile lights up your entire face. Thereās that sense of familiarity all over again and itās a fleeting moment where he suddenly realizes where he knows you from. The after party for Deadpool & Wolverine. He remembered leaving that night with a huge smile on his face after spending the entire night talking with you.Ā
That was months ago and while you two have had brief conversations between then and now through social media, neither of you ever tried to pursue each other. Though, there was an obvious attraction, an obvious pull that you felt towards one another.Ā
Hugh doesnāt ask anymore questions about you, but instead he watches you finish your glass of champagne. He smiles to himself and finishes his own glass before he takes yours and sets both glasses down on a nearby table.Ā
āWould you like to dance?ā Hugh asks, large hand extending out for you.Ā
Gently, you place your hand in his and nod, stepping closer to him. āI thought youād never ask.āĀ
Hugh smiles to himself and leads you to the dance floor, his free hand moving to rest on your lower back. He feels your other hand come to rest on his shoulder as heās careful not to step on the ends of your dress. Even under the shadows of the dance floor, Hugh can see you so clearly.Ā
you put a spell on me
Iām losing my mindĀ
As the song begins, Hugh sways with you, hand splaying on your lower back as he feels your skin underneath his fingertips. He bites his lower lip, staring into your eyes through his own mask. He feels a bit at ease with the mask, like everyone else in the room wonāt be focusing on the two of you and how youāre both becoming increasingly closer.Ā
you better stop thingsĀ
itās a matter of timeĀ
You can feel his fingertips run lightly along your back as his eyes remain locked on yours. Since meeting him, Hugh had occupied your thoughts and the brief conversations you had with him always left you yearning for more. It was easy to talk to him; it felt so natural and he always made you laugh.Ā
Hugh pulls you flush against him, your body pressing firmly against his as the song continues.Ā
before I hunt you downĀ
grab your chin
and kiss your lipsĀ
Your eyes move to his lips, biting down on your lower lip in anticipation. The tension between the both of you thickens and your hand on his shoulder moves to rest on his chest, the muscle beneath the fabric of his shirt tensing and flexing at your touch.Ā
you bring me back
I lay you downĀ
and grab your hipsĀ
Hugh then drops your hand and moves both of his own to rest on your hips, gripping them tightly as he lowers his head to press his forehead lightly against yours. Quietly, almost above a whisper, Hugh finally says your name with a cheeky grin on his lips.Ā
āYāYou figured it out,ā you say.Ā
āKnew it the minute you smiled at me,ā Hugh replies.Ā
As you continue to sway on the dance floor with him, your own hands move to wrap around his neck, linking your fingers together to rest at the nape of his neck.Ā
I put a spell on youĀ
and now youāre mineĀ
Iāve got a hold on youĀ
at least for the nightĀ
āDo you wanna get out of here?ā You ask him hesitantly, looking into his eyes hopefully.Ā
Hugh nods instantly. āYes,ā he answers.Ā
ā
When you finally get to his penthouse, you walk inside and look around, still wearing your mask. You gasp quietly when you feel his strong hands on your hips, turning you around to face him. He slowly lifts his mask off and away from his face, his hazel eyes now glimmering with excitement.Ā
Heās so handsome, so beautiful and breathtaking. Hugh then reaches up to slowly lift the mask away from your face, eyes gazing directly into your own once he removes it completely. He feels his heart race faster again at the sight of you.Ā
āBeautiful,ā he whispers.Ā
āHugh?ā You ask, hand coming up to gently run along the lapel of his white suit jacket.Ā
āYes, love?āĀ
āKiss me, please.āĀ
Hugh nods and then leans in to press his lips firmly against your own. His hand moved to cup your cheek, fingers splaying against the side of your neck. Your own hands move to the lapels of his white suit jacket, gripping it lightly as you begin to move your lips with his own. Youāve imagined this so many times, but you never thought that it would feel this perfect.Ā
His free hand moves to rest on your hip, rubbing his thumb against the fabric of your dress. Hugh darts his tongue out to tease your lips and when you let out a gasp, his tongue slides in your mouth to meet your own. The grip around his jacket tightens further and you feel a familiar throbbing between your legs, your wetness now staining the panties you have on.Ā
Hugh pulls away from the kiss momentarily to look down at you. Youāve occupied his mind since meeting you and the brief conversations you did share has always left him wondering if this could be more. He didnāt want to push this, push you, into something that wouldnāt become anything but the moment he knew it was you, Hugh realized he wanted you. Bad.Ā
Heās staring into your eyes, searching for any doubt in your features. Hugh drops his hand to rest on the side of your neck, thumb now brushing against your collarbone. āTell meā¦ā he sighs. āTell me Iām not the only one that feels something here.āĀ
āYouāre not,ā you admit. āIāve beenā Since the night of the party, I kind of expected you to ask me out orā¦ā you feel the heat in your cheeks rise and you bite your lower lip. āI thought maybe I had just imagined it.ā
The hand on your hip moves to your back, fingertips grazing your skin as he dips it lower and lower beneath the fabric of your dress. āI didnāt want to scare you away,ā he confesses.Ā
āI donāt think you ever could.ā You move your hands up his chest and slowly undo his bow tie, biting your lower lip in anticipation.Ā
āAnd if we do this?ā Hugh asks, hopefully.Ā
āWell, if we do this,ā you say quietly, your fingers slowly beginning to unbutton his shirt. āItās not going to be just a one time thingā¦ but if you want it to be a one time thing, then we should probably establishāā
Hugh shakes his head and interjects, āitās not going to be a one time thing.āĀ
You smile up at him, your fingertips grazing the exposed skin on his chest as you continue to unbutton his shirt. āGood. Take me to your room?ā
āYes,ā Hugh breathes out. He steps back and away from you, taking your hand in his and leading you to his main bedroom upstairs. You donāt even have time to look around, to get acquainted with his personal space that he allowed you to get a glimpse of because the moment you step inside, Hugh gently sets you on the edge of his large mattress.Ā
You watch him get rid of his bow tie and white jacket, discarding it on the floor. Youāre about to reach down to remove your heels, but Hugh drops to his knees in front of you, taking one foot to slide the heel off. You clear your throat, hands resting on the edges of the mattress as Hugh proceeds to your other foot to remove your heel. Slowly, he lifts the ends of your dress to reveal more of your legs, his fingertips hovering lightly over you.
Once your dress bunches up at the waist and he gets a clear view of your matching red lace thong, he has to reach down to squeeze his throbbing erection. Hugh leans in and presses soft kisses on your inner thigh, the stubble of his beard and his sideburns grazing your skin and causing a shiver to run through your body.Ā
Hugh stares up at you, eyes silently asking for permission. When he sees you nod, Hugh moves further between your legs, his nose brushing against your clothed sex. It causes a gasp to escape your lips, eyes falling shut as nudges you with the bridge of his nose.Ā
āHugh,ā you whimper. āPlease, babyā¦ā
Hugh smirks and pulls away to look up at you. He stands up ā albeit with protest from you ā and takes your hand. Once youāre standing in front of him, he reaches for the zipper on the side of your dress and lowers it until the dress becomes loose around your frame. He feels your hands come back up to finish the job of unbuttoning his shirt and once itās fully unbuttoned, you push it off his shoulders and the shirt drops to the floor. Heās now completely shirtless and your eyes deviate to his strong and chiseled chest. You lean in and gently nip along his collarbone, hands coming up to graze his abdomen and up his chest.Ā
Hugh lets out a quiet moan at your touch. Slowly, he takes your hands and presses a soft kiss on your knuckles before he reaches out to pull down your dress. Once it pools around your ankles, he feels his breath catch in his throat yet again. Youāre standing in front of him in a deep red lace bra and matching thong set.Ā
āYouāre breathtaking,ā he compliments. āFuck,ā he adds.Ā
Hugh has always looked at you like the most beautiful woman heās ever seen, has always given you his undivided attention, and right now is no different. Youād usually be very conscious about your body, about how you look, but the way heās looking at you makes you feel very confident and secure in your skin.Ā
āI think itās only fair we take these off, huh?ā You say, hands moving to the waistband of his pants. You can see his obvious bulge from beneath his slacks, can see the outline of him and you feel only slightly nervous because he looks big. At least, bigger than youāve ever had before.Ā
Hugh nods and then undoes his pants, quickly stepping out of them as he kicks his shoes off. Heās wearing black boxer briefs and you slowly reach out to rest your palm over him, his girth and size not a match for your hand. Youāre tugging on his boxers, tugging on the fabric to pull it away from him, but Hugh shakes his head and wraps his arms around your waist instead.Ā
āGotta see you first, baby,ā he whispers, lips grazing your jawline. Then, Hugh sets you on the middle of his bed, biting his lower lip at the sight of you all splayed out for him. He quickly moves to settle himself between your legs, making sure to press himself against you. When he feels you roll your hips, Hugh lets out a groan.Ā
Hugh reaches around you and unclasps your bra, pulling it slowly away from your body. He tosses it over his shoulder, eyes moving to your now exposed breasts and he pushes further into you. He hooks his fingers under the waistband of your thong, pulling it down your legs. āGonna keep these,ā he growls, bringing the fabric up to his nose and inhales your scent.Ā
You bite your lower lip and nod up at him, watching him set your panties on his nightstand. When you look back up at him, Hughās eyes scan every inch of your naked frame, almost like heās committing it to memory. When he presses his clothed length against you, he feels your wetness stain the fabric of his briefs.Ā
Hugh slowly lowers himself further to press light kisses on your collarbone, lips moving further and further until he wraps his lips around your nipple. He groans to himself and uses his free hand to begin kneading your unattended breast. Hugh feels your hips continue to roll upwards into him and heās throbbing so painfully beneath the fabric of his boxer briefs. He pulls back, flicking his tongue against your nipple before he moves to give the same attention to your other breast.Ā
āOh god,ā you whimper. Hugh smiles to himself and moves a hand between your legs, a finger slowly grazing your exposed sex. Youāre already so wet, juices building and trickling down to his sheets. He slides the tip of his finger into your heat, growling against you as he feels your walls tighten around him, sucking him in.Ā
He slides his finger further into your heat, pulling away from your breast to look up at you. Hugh rests his forehead against your temple, whispering lowly in your ear. āYouāre so wet, babyā¦ā he smirks, nibbling at your earlobe as he begins to pump his finger in and out of your depths.Ā
Your hands move to his shoulders, gripping it tightly as your walls begin to tremble. When Hugh pushes another digit into you, your back arches and your fingernails dig into his skin. āHugh!ā You moan loudly, your head tossing back slightly against the mattress as you feel your walls begin to clench around his digits, your orgasm approaching faster than what youāre used to.Ā
Hugh grins to himself and quickens his pace. He can feel your juices around his fingers, can hear the squelching sounds of his fingers pumping into your wet heat. After a few more pumps, Hugh presses his fingers fully into, palm firmly against your bundle of nerves.Ā
āCome for me,ā he growls into your ear.Ā
And on command, your walls clench further around him and a loud moan escapes your lips. You roll your hips against his hand, his palm providing the right amount of friction against your clit. When you slowly come down from your high, Hugh then pulls his hand away from you. He sees your arousal coat his fingers and he grins, bringing it to his lips and sucking them off his fingers. His eyes flutter at your taste and he leans back against his knees.Ā
āGod, you taste good.ā Hughās about to lower himself to get a taste of you directly through the source, but his eyes slightly widen when you sit up and gently push him onto his back. āBaby,ā he says softly, seeing the dark gaze in your eyes. Hugh feels your hands tug down his briefs, his erected manhood now resting against his lower abdomen.Ā
āYou made me come,ā you tell him, licking your lower lip. āAlready,ā you continue.Ā
āOh, youāre gonna come a few more times tonight before Iām done with you,ā Hugh grins proudly.Ā
You donāt answer. Instead, you lie on your abdomen and grasp the base of length, wasting no time in wrapping your lips around his tip. Hugh lets out a loud groan in surprise, hand coming down to tangle itself in your hair. You whimper at the taste of him, at his girth stretching your mouth. He lifts his head slightly off the bed to look down at you, groaning at the sight of you. You smile at him ā fucking smile with his cock in your mouth and it makes him go wild. Hugh rests his head back against the mattress, eyes fully shut tight when he feels you lower your mouth further onto him.Ā
Your hand strokes what your mouth canāt take and he knows that he canāt fucking come right now, knows that he doesnāt want to come in your mouth when he hasnāt even felt how you would feel wrapped around him.Ā
āBaby, baby, fuck,ā he groans, gently pulling you away from his length. Hugh looks down at himself, seeing your saliva coating half of his size and when he looks up at you, youāre fucking smiling again. He rolls you onto your back and settles himself between your legs, grasping his base and running his tip along your throbbing sex. āAs much as I loved the sight of you with my cock in your mouth,ā he growls, eyes staring deeply into yours. āI still need to feel you.āĀ
Then, Hugh pushes his tip into you. He groans to himself, pushing his hips into you as he slides into your tight walls inch by inch. Youāre so wet, so warm, so fucking tight. He rests his forearms at either side of your head, gently stroking your hair back and away from your face. He stares into your eyes, rolling his hips into you until he fills you to the hilt.Ā
āYou feel good, baby,ā Hugh whispers, lips brushing against yours. He feels your legs wrap around his waist, whimpering quietly as your eyes flutter when he pulls out to his tip only to thrust back into you slowly. āItās taking a lot of restraint in me to not justā¦ā he slams into you roughly, causing a loud moan to leave your lips. āFuck.āĀ
You wrap your arms around his shoulders, moving your lips to his jawline and neck. āFuck me, Hughā¦ I can take it. I promise.āĀ
Like a switch turned on, Hugh pulls back and sits back on his knees. He brings your legs to drape over his strong shoulders as he slides back into you. He turns his head and kisses the inside of your calf gently, softly, as he delivers a sharp thrust into you.Ā
Hughās thrusts donāt falter, his skin slaps against yours as he picks up the pace. When he leans forward, your legs still over his shoulders, you feel him slide further into your depths. He rests his hands on the mattress, using it to ground him as he feels your walls slide along his throbbing length, gripping him so tight.Ā
You can feel the tightness begin to build, your walls beginning to clench once more as your orgasm looms closer and closer. You reach out to rest your hands on his chest, feeling like you canāt handle anymore. Your body is overly sensitive and with each drag of his hips, with each push he thrusts into you, is enough for your walls to tighten even further around his length.Ā
āOh god,ā you moan aloud. āHugh!āĀ
Hugh groans at the sight of you, at the feel of your walls clenching and trembling around him. He slows his thrusts for a moment, placing your legs back to your side as he stares down at you. āThatās two,ā he grins proudly. Hugh pulls out completely, looking down at his length to see it slick with your arousal.Ā
āItās not a game,ā you pant, moving to sit up with your legs still spread wide for him.Ā
Hugh smirks, reaching down and stroking himself slowly as his eyes take in your entire frame. Heās surprised that heās held out this long, driven by his desire to get you to come at least one more time before he does.Ā
āReally? Because Iām kind of enjoying myself, baby.āĀ
You narrow your eyes and then slowly roll yourself into your abdomen. You bury your face against the softness of his pillow as you bring the sheet to cover your lower half. āGood, well Iām gonna get some sleep. You can fix that little problem yourself.ā You bite your lower lip, knowing that Hughās not going to like that. When you look over your shoulder at him, you can see his lower lip between his teeth and he tugs the sheet down and away from your body.Ā
āOh, we wanna be a tease, huh?ā Hugh straddles your hips, caging you in as he brings his hand lightly down your ass. The sound of his palm connecting with your backside echoes throughout his room. You gasp loudly, fully surprised that you actually like it. āWe like that, do we?ā Hugh smirks and then spanks you once more, feeling you wiggle back into him. āOh, baby, youāre naughty.āĀ
Then, he slides into you fully, this new position making you feel even tighter around him. You reach back, trying to push him away ā your walls so sensitive with two orgasms already. Hugh clicks his tongue and grabs your hands and places them above your head, gripping your wrists firmly. He rolls his hips into you, eyes fluttering at the feel of you around him.Ā
āHugh, baby, pleaseāā
Hugh interrupts you with a harsh thrust, resting his chest firmly against your back as he whispers into your ear. āTell me how it feels, love,ā he pants, a groan leaving his lips.Ā
āFeels good,ā you whimper, pushing back against him. āYouāre soāā your breath catches in your throat when he pushes all the way into you, filling you so fully and deeply. Heās crowding your space, holding your wrists down, the weight of his body weight firmly pressing against yours, and his tip kissing your most inner partsā¦ itās enough for you to reach yet another orgasm.Ā
āFuck, Hugh!ā
Hugh releases your wrists to grab your hips and pull out of you abruptly. He turns you over and leans down to lap at your juices, eyes fluttering at your taste as his tongue helps you ride out your climax. Your hand immediately moves to his hair ā what was once neatly done for tonightās event now is a complete mess as you tug and pull.Ā
Hugh brings a hand to press his thumb firmly against your clit, feeling your entire body tremble and shake against him.Ā
āHugh!ā you moan loudly, back arching. Youāre truly spent and heās still so fucking hard for you. When he pulls away, he licks his lips and gently slaps your already-sensitive pussy, which causes a gasp to escape your lips. Youāre breathing so heavily, chest raising as you stare at him with a dazed look on your face.Ā
āThree?ā He smirks.Ā
āHow are you stillā¦ā you bite your lip and see him move to lie down next to you, his hand dropping down to slowly begin to stroke himself. āDonāt you want to come?āĀ
Hugh growls lowly, eyes looking at you from top to bottom. āI do,ā he answers. āBut seeing you come is just as good.āĀ
You take a few deep breaths and then slowly move to straddle his waist. You take hold of his base, holding it firm in your hand. You keep your eyes locked on his and slowly lower yourself onto him, feeling his girth stretch you out once more. You know you wonāt be able to last long, your entire body already on overdrive. When you slowly begin to lower yourself onto him, inch by inch, it surprises you at how deep he feels in this position. Your walls slide down each inch of his length and when you lower yourself completely, until youāre sitting firmly on his lap, your hands move to rest on his chest.
āSo deep,ā you whisper, slowly rolling your hips forward and backwards, the hair at his base providing just the right amount of friction against your clit. āNow, itās your turn to comeā Hugh!āĀ
He delivers a sharp thrust upwards, hands moving to grip your hips tightly and his fingertips dig into your flesh. Hugh licks his lower lip, staring up at you as you try your best to hold out another orgasm just so he can come. Itās cute, very considerate, but he needs one more out of you. Hugh isnāt usually like this, but thereās something about you that brings out this feral animal in him.Ā
One hand moves to grasp your breast, massaging and kneading it into his palm as his other keeps a tight hold on your hip. Hugh lets out a loud moan when he feels you begin to bounce along his length ā all the way to his tip and back down completely. Heās close, heās surprised heās even held out this long with coming, but he knows heās close and he canāt hold it anymore.Ā
āBabyāā Hugh groans, thumb brushing against your nipple as he sits up and wraps his arms around your waist. You continue to move along his length, your own hands moving to rest on his shoulders. In the time that heās known you, youāve always been so determined, especially when you put your mind on something and right now is no different.Ā
He feels you lean in to press your lips against his own. Itās a messy kiss, but fueled with so much passion, so much intensity. Hugh feels the tightness build and build in the pit of his stomach as his hands hold you firmly still, his hips stuttering upwards into you at an erratic pace.Ā
āOh god,ā he groans, pulling away from the kiss to bury his face against the side of your neck. Slowly, he feels your hips roll forwards and backwards, causing a shiver to run through his body. Hugh pulls back enough to look up at you and he sees that same fucking grin on your face. With an arm wrapped around your waist, he rolls you onto your back and slowly pulls out of you, seeing his release trickle out of you.Ā
Heās about to say something, but you interrupt him by reaching down to scoop some of his release onto your finger and lift it to your lips. Without hesitation, you suck the remnants of his release off your fingertip and maintain eye contact.Ā
āMinx,ā he groans.Ā
You smile and lean up to kiss his cheek, resting your head against his shoulder. āI donāt think Iāll be able to walk for the next few days,ā you giggle. āI canāt believe you made me come three times.ā
āLetās aim for four next time,ā Hugh grins.
āI donāt know if I can do fourā¦ā you laugh.Ā
āOh, baby, I believe in you,ā he winks and moves to hover above you again. Hughās hand comes up to rest on your cheek, thumb brushing against your skin lightly. āBut before we do that, can I take you out on a real date?ā
You nod and turn your head slightly to kiss the inside of his wrist. āYes, Hugh.ā
Hugh grins and then leans down to capture your lips in a slow, passionate kiss.
---
forever taglist: @haytchee @wolverigrl
#hugh jackman#hugh jackman request#hugh jackman requests#hugh jackman x reader#hugh jackman x you#hugh jackman x fem!reader#hugh jackman x f!reader#story: mystery woman#hugh jackman oneshot#hugh jackman smut
411 notes
Ā·
View notes
Text
hang up if u want to | kmg
he's in japan. you're at home, knowing there's no point in staring at your phone, waiting. mingyu might not wanna define what the two of you are, but that certainly doesn't stop him from asking for what he wants.
pairing: idol!mingyu x f. reader genre: situationship au; a lil angst, smut warnings: swearing. sexting ā use of gendered terms for genitalia, mentions of oral and penetrative sex, masturbation, images/videos, dirty talk i guess?, squirting. one mention of reader wearing a dress. another mention of reader wearing mingyuās shirt and it being large on her. (not meant to be an indication of sizeāthat mf is just so large i think most people would drown in his clothes.) mingyu is domineering and kind of brat tamer-y but i wouldn't say this is dom-y at all. he also uses the term "baby" a lot bc i refuse to use y/n. rating: explicit. minors dni. wordcount: 3.6k listen to: namasenda - dare (pm) / khalid, 6lack, ty dolla $ign - otw / keshi - like i need u / edward maya & vika jigulina - stereo love / monsta x - addicted / brockhampton - sugar / shy martin - good together author's note: hello, i barely text men let alone sext them, so if this sucks my bad. i'm also not 100% comfy for writing any groups outside of bts, so i'm also sorry if the characterization is off. the mingyu brainrot was brainrotting tho bc if there's one thing he's gonna do it's look hot holding his phone in a photo, so. here we are. i was gonna wait and post this tomorrow but it's valentine's day so fuck it we ball. thank you: @the-boy-meets-evil, @hot-soop, & @effortandmore for checking this over and brainstorming with me. namasenda for the lyrics in the title and inspo.
Kim Mingyu Missed Call (2)
Your eyes glance upwards at the time. Itās nearing one a.m.; Mingyuās second call came and went only a few minutes ago. The first one will have come not long after he got off stage, because they always do. Thereās a scriptāunspoken and unacknowledged, but a script nonethelessāand Mingyu follows it religiously.
You sigh. Leave your phone on your nightstand as you change into pajamas, back into the bathroom to wash your face. Roll your eyes as you hear the texts roll in, the sound grating and ominous as it vibrates against the wood.
All part of the script.
Kim Mingyu: just got back to the hotel Kim Mingyu: you up
Also part of the script: this is the only way it goes. Maybe Mingyu wants to text you, but adrenalineās the only reason he ever goes through with it. That post-concert high, nothing else to do with all that energy but invest it into you, and the thing about scripts is that they get old, grow stale. Always the same thing, and you can only have that conversation so many times before you get tired and rip it up.
We all have roles to play. Mingyu is the one who refuses to define what it is the two of you have, put a label on it. Heās the one who calls from countries away and speaks in that low, hushed tone. Heās the tempter, the one who holds all the cards but refuses to lay them down.
A royal flush, every single time.
And youļæ½ļæ½youāre not helpless. Not some poor creature fighting for its life in a spun-silk web. Mingyuās capable of devouring you in more ways than one, but itās not like that. Not really. As laissez-faire as he is, you come and go as you please, too. Perhaps itās as mutually beneficial as it is destructive, but thatās the nature of the production; the result of the roles you two of you play.
Kim Mingyu: you ignoring me? Kim Mingyu: i saw your ig story Kim Mingyu: knock it off baby
You smile, private and sardonic, because you arenāt helpless. Sometimes itās your web, and itās all Mingyu can do to keep his head above water. Another role youād borrowed from someplace else but still have memorized. Still remember all the lines, the mannerisms.
On your story: a video of you, bare skin glittering beneath the golden-fluorescent light of your bathroom; you, with your dress unzipped, the straps slipping down your arms; your hand pressed to your chest to keep yourself covered. Your back turned to the camera, visible only in the mirror, as the silk dropped to the floor.
In the settings: only two accounts given permission to see, both belonging to the same person.
In your DMs: Mingyu, on his private account with the username that looks more like a keysmash than any legible thing, reacting with the fire emoji.
Related: the image hovering just above Mingyuās texts. The one heād repaid you with not long after seeing your story. A mirror selfie of his own: grey sweatpants hung low on his hips, a soaked-through white t-shirt stuck to his stomach, the lines of his abs visible.
That, and everything below itāall left unanswered.
The thing about Mingyu is heāll give chase. Doesnāt shy away from all the things he wants; isnāt shy about giving voice to them.
But heāll never, ever beg.
(Not like this, at least. When heās in your bed itās always a different story. Heās a kept man, there, and kept men have no qualms about things like that. Begging for your mouth, your pussy. Begging you to let him come.)
Normally youād let it go. Let him talk to himself in your texts, because heās got a lot of nerve if nothing else, but youād gone out earlier. Grabbed a few drinks with your girlfriends, let the alcohol thrum through you like a livewire. Watched as they danced with men whose names they didnāt know and never learned and thought about what itād be like to be able to do something like that in public.
Got home, felt a little scorned, just on the edge of bitter. Made a show of taking your dress off in the bathroom mirror and posted it someplace you knew heād look.
You: did you like it?
Rhetorical. Mingyu may not want to put a label on this thing, might not want to be caged-in and suffocated, but you know what you do to him. All the ways you affect him.
i could tell you, comes the immediate reply, and your eyes are halfway rolled whenā
Kim Mingyu: or i could show you
It takes a second to come through, but once it does your breath hitches in your throat. Far from the most obscene image heās ever sent you, but just as effective. An expanse of tanned, soft skin, lean muscle; still in those same grey sweats, bunched up a little on the thigh as he lays in his plush hotel bed with his legs spread.
At the center of it all, the outline of his hard, thick cock, so fucking big as it stretches the fabric taut.
All you can do is stare.
Mingyu is not of this earth. This thought is nothing new: he has always existed outside the realm of possibility, in more ways than one, so this is merely a fact. Grass is green, the sky is blue, sometimes you can love someone in a way thatās so overwhelming and still be no good for them.
Another fact: itās primal, the way you need him. Always has been.
You: what am i looking at? You: new sweatpants?
On the other end of the line, itās easy to imagine his reaction. A quick snort of laughter, tongue pressed into the fat of his cheek before he clenches his jaw. If he were here, heād haul you into his lap, kiss you deep and messy. Trail his fingers along your skin until they settled in the hollow of your throat.
Pull away just for a second. Just long enough to say, āWatch your mouth,ā before heās licking into it.
Kim Mingyu: donāt be like that š
This time your eyes fully roll. Spitefully, you snap a picture of whatās in front of you: your bedroom wall, some drama playing on the TV, a sliver of amber light from the lamp next to you.
You send it.
You: while weāre sending pictures of irrelevant shit
Truth be told, youāre not like this often, but you get a streak of it every now and then. Only ever at times like this, when the two of you havenāt seen one another in a while and the distance between you is still so ambiguous, untitled.
Usually Mingyu will come by your place. Get you stripped down to almost nothing, have you writhing on his fingers. Then, in between satisfied groans, heāll slap at your thighs, tell you to stop being a brat.
Kim Mingyu: then send me something worthwhile You: you first
Another beat of silence. Long enough to flick through the channels, plug in your phone, let some of that heat dissipate.
Your phone chimes, and when you look downā
Those grey sweats are long gone, replaced with a pair of black briefs barely containing his cock, still hard and curved toward his stomach. You swallow. Let your eyes linger on the corded muscle of his thighs, all that soft skin. Let your mind remind you, just for a second, how it feels beneath your fingertips, your hands, your mouth.
All the sounds he makes.
Kim Mingyu: is that better Kim Mingyu: is that what you wanted
Unbidden, the corners of your mouth lift. hmā¦ close but no, you type out. Let it sit for a few seconds before you delete it. If Mingyu wants to be a tease, you can do the same.
You situate yourself against the pillows. Angle your phone so the length of your body is visible: your bare legs twisted in the sheets, the bruise Mingyu had sucked into the inside of your thigh before he left just barely making it into the frame. Whatās fully visible, though: his shirt thatās draped over your frame, how much it engulfs you, the way youāre drowning in it. In him.
You send it.
You: depends... is this what you wanted?
The response is immediate:
Kim Mingyu: absolutely not. take it off baby.
Youāve starred in this production before, knew where it was headed the second you saw the missed calls, so youād put on his favorite of your underwear. Skimpy red lace, part of a set heād had sent to your apartment. Used to tell you in desperate whispers how ruined he was seeing you in them; used to have to rein himself in so he didnāt rip them off.
So you snap another photo. Spread your legs a little further, pull the hem of Mingyuās shirt between your teeth. Know seeing that sliver of your stomach will drive him crazy, too, but itāll pale in comparison to the underwear.
You consider video calling him. Want to see his face when you send this photoāthe pinch of his brows, the slight drop of his jaw. The way heāll whimper a little, say baby in that tone that floods you with heat: a little desperate, all hushed awe, bordering on a whine.
The same kind of heat that starts to creep back in again. Thereās power in desire, in being desired, and even though youāre here and Mingyuās in a hotel room in Japan, you can still feel it. Subconscious, like some kind of red string shit. Anticipatory.
Kim Mingyu: goddamn Kim Mingyu: you wear those for me? Kim Mingyu: fuck, i wish i was there to take them off of you
You suck in a breath. and if you were? you send back.
Kim Mingyu: you know that pair is my favorite Kim Mingyu: drives me crazy every time you wear that set Kim Mingyu: but iāve changed my mind. i want you to keep them on Kim Mingyu: want you to keep my shirt on too You: yeah? you want me to wear your shirt while you fuck me? pull my panties to the side? Kim Mingyu: slow down baby, iām taking my time with you
In your bed, you snort to yourself. Mingyu has never been patient with anything, but especially not with you. Most of the time heās so keyed up, wound so tight, that itās all the two of you can do to make it to your bedāand sometimes you donāt. Sometimes Mingyu puts all that body to use, presses your back to the wall and throws your legs over his shoulders as he eats you out. Wraps your legs around him as he fucks you right there, the slide so, so easy with how wet and messy he gets you.
You remind him of as much. Type out, you? taking your time? iāve got a couple walls in my entryway that would say differently, and laugh when the reply comes throughācanāt help myself sometimesāand promptly stop laughing at the next one: never can, with you.
Kim Mingyu: have i ever told you what i love the most? Kim Mingyu: just kissing you. you always taste so good, baby Kim Mingyu: the way you get so worked up and start grabbing at me when iām doing it. the way you try to get me to touch you. the way you start grinding your pussy on me like you canāt go another second without me inside you
You feel like youāre on fire. Gets worse with every word you read and re-read, try to commit to memory. You know it all too well, what heās talking about. Know how warm his skin is, how firm he feels under your touch. Know what he tastes like. How soft his lips are. The way he sounds when you start to writhe, the way he groans when he presses tighter against you, presses you into the mattress, hard cock rutting against you, enough to take the edge off but nowhere near what he needs.
You: love that too You: love when youāre inside me even more
Kim Mingyu: me too baby Kim Mingyu: love the way you feel around me Kim Mingyu: always so fucking tight Kim Mingyu: ffuck
Your stomach drops at his last message. are you touching yourself? you type, even though you already know the answer. Another sight youāre blessed to know: Mingyuās hand wrapped around himself, how the size of his cock makes it look small in comparison. Head tilted back, abs flexing under the weight of the pleasure.
You get a singular character in reply: ģ.
show me.
He doesnāt respond right away. The pause is enough to have anticipation thrumming through your veins, make you a little shaky. Your hand trembles as you trace patterns into your warm, soft skin, pretending itās Mingyuās touch and not your own. Pretend itās Mingyuās hand that grabs at your breast beneath his shirt, thumbs over your nipple; Mingyuās touch that has soft gasps escaping you. Pretend itās Mingyuās hand that dips beneath the hem of your panties.
Kim Mingyu Attachment: 1 Movie
On the screen: Mingyuās face greets you first, eyes half-lidded and hazy, the corners of his mouth lifted in a smirk. He tilts his head back, lets you see the sweat-slick skin of his neck, the column of his throat; pans the camera down over his collar bones, his bare chest, before he flips the screen. Can barely fit the entirety of his frame in the shot, and it strikes you someplace deep, how big he is. How overwhelming.
You suck in a breath as your eyes focusāas you take in the way heās stroking himself. His cock glistens with whatever lube heād indulged in, but you canāt help but pretend itās from you and your mouth. Wish you could see the way heād touch himself as you sucked him nearly to orgasm and told him to finish himself off. The way heād whine, beg a little, get a little shitty with you.
āFuck,ā you say out loud. You can feel your pupils blow at the thought.
āJagiya,ā comes Mingyuās voice, intertwined with the sounds of the tv, a city so far away from you, āfuck, Iām so fu-fucking hard.ā
If youād thought you were on fire before, itās nothing compared to now. Hearing the need in his voice, watching the way heās touching himself. The way his hips stutter as his body seeks out more, more, more, always more, and the way he squeezes the base of his cock so he doesnāt come too soon.
āWish it was you. Wish it was you touching me like this. Iāfuck, need you so bad.ā
You watch as Mingyu strokes over the head of his cock, as each subsequent pass gets more tacky and wet. Lick your lips at the sight of it. Want, more than anything, to get your mouth on him and taste the salt of his skin, the precome heās jerking himself off with.
Before he even needs to ask, you start recording a video of your own. Leave your panties on because you know heād want you to. Record the first pass of your fingers through your slick, let out a disbelieving little laugh at how wet you are, how you can hear it. Moan as you dip a finger into your cunt, just to the first knuckle. Say, āIām so wet, Gyu, oh my god,ā all breathy.
Not all that different from how you sound when heās here. When heās flesh and blood and right beside you, on top of you.
You use the wetness youāve gathered and move your hand to your clit. Itās throbbing beneath your touch, your body already wound too tight, and you nearly hiss in oversensitivity and relief when you finally touch yourself the way youāve wanted to. āFuck.ā
You force yourself to take your time. Slow, small circles, when everything in your body is screaming to be selfish, begging for release the same way Mingyuās had.
āShould I finger myself?ā you ask. A sharp inhale as your next pass has your toes curling. āWo-wonāt feel as good as you, but I needāneed more.ā
Before you cut the video, you zoom in a little. Make sure Mingyu will be able to see the way youāre touching yourself, be able to hear the sound of your arousal, the same sounds that have warmth blooming in your cheeks.
Kim Mingyu: jesusf fuck Kim Mingyu: god baby youre so hto Kim Mingyu: wanna see you finger yourself Kim Mingyu: please
Itās a little embarrassing, how incapable you are of denying him anything. You trust him implicitly, love him even more, so itās second nature to give in, to adjust your phone so you donāt have to hold it. Second nature to press record, pull your panties to the side just like youād proposed earlier; second nature to make a show of sticking two fingers in your mouth, sucking on them, before bringing them to your entrance and easing them inside.
Nothing compared to the stretch of Mingyu, both his fingers and his cock, but itās still good. Enough to have you sighing softly, barely audible over the sound of everything else: the rustling of your sheets, the low thrum of your own television, you in general.
A rhythmic song and dance. Practiced. You grow wetter with each push and pull; know Mingyu will be able to see it, the way you work yourself open. That, too, has you a little dizzy. Breathless. You wonder what he sees when he looks at you. Not only like this, but all the time. Does he see an expiration date? Something good while it lasted? Is there just thisāsomething carnal and superficial?
Or does he just see you?
It drives you crazy. Inspires something within you: not just the desire to please him, make it worth his while, but to be something else, something more than this. Has your fingers moving a little faster, has you grinding your clit against the palm of your hand. Has you a whining, writhing mess; has sounds spilling out that you arenāt sure youāve ever heard come out of you.
You send it before you can overthink it. Whatever Mingyu sees in you, at least these are the images thatāll play in his mind whenever he thinks of you. At least youāve sunk your claws into him.
Seconds pass in a blur. Youāre still on the brink of a mind-numbing orgasm, stuck in this liminal space simply because Mingyu isnāt here, and you know, too, how this goes. Know you arenāt supposed to come without his say-so in the same way he edges himself until he gets yours.
Kim Mingyu: shit shit shit Kim Mingyu: i wish that was me. wanna take you apart like that. wanna finger you while i eat you out, make you squirt all over me again Kim Mingyu: fuck i thin k about that all the time Kim Mingyu: im gonna cum
I think about that all the time.
So do you. You, on your hands and knees, Mingyu eating you out from behind. Bracing yourself against the headboard with one arm, the other one reaching behind you to pull at his hair. You remember how relentless heād been that night. A man possessed. Disregarded all your breathless pleas, every Mingyu, Gyu, fuck, fuck, Mingyu, babyā that left your mouth. His tongue left your pussy only long enough to say, you can take it, baby before he was right back at it. Before he worked in two fingers alongside his mouth. Before his free hand came down hard on your ass, the sting startling you, making you jerk, forcing you closer to his mouth.
You remember coming with a scream. You remember coming to with Mingyuās lips to your neck, the sweet way he was speaking to you. You remember the knee-jerk embarrassment you felt when you saw the giant wet spot youād left on the bed and how quickly it dissipated when Mingyu pressed a kiss to your temple, called you his good girl.
You: you can come, but you know the rule
You move your fingers back to your clit, feel all that pleasure flood back, start in your toes. Itās not long before youāre pulling a blistering orgasm from your bodyāone that feels like it belongs to Mingyu, wasnāt yours for the taking.
thank you, he replies, right beneath a photo of his abs streaked with cum.
The comedown is jarring. You feel both too big for your body and completely out of sorts now that youāve fulfilled your role. Now that thereās nothing to do but sit in the stillness of your bedroom, that same drama playing on television, some girl getting her heart broken.
You wonder if Mingyuās thinking the same. If his body also sags with relief, if the absence of all that tension feels crushing. If the first thought he has in this newfound clarity is also I love you and if he also swallows it down every single time. You wonder if he thinks about his role, if itās becoming stale and tired.
Because you know what comes next:
Kim Mingyu: iāll be home soon Kim Mingyu: can i see you
And you also know what youāll say. After all, youāve played this role before.
if you've made it this far thank you so much for reading! this is prob not my best work since it's a lil rushed but i needed something to get me out of my slump.
i would love to hear your thoughts! <3
#mingyu x reader#mingyu smut#mingyu imagines#mingyu scenarios#mingyu x you#mingyu x y/n#seventeen x reader#svt x reader#seventeen scenarios#seventeen smut#jewel writes
1K notes
Ā·
View notes
Text
"Flower On My Skin" | hobbit
pairing: Thranduil x human fem!reader š
Thranduil gets his hair braided and thinks too much.
warnings/tags: bittersweet, more fluff tho, swf, King Thranduil needs a break
words: 1,9k
an: this is a gift for the lovely @tigereyesf who always comments on my posts on ao3 š¤ the lyrics are from Noah Kahans song "Your needs, my needs'
+ masterlist +
šæ reposts and comments are appreciated, they motivate me a lot and keep me writing <3
Thranduil understands that permitting you to be near him might not be wise. It could very well rank among the least advisable decisions he's made in ages.
But he did, he invited you again and again, sending horses and carriages to transport you ever since he found out you traveled all the way from Dale by yourself whenever he sent a letter.
Until he didn't need to anymore.
Not because you wouldn't come, but because you didn't leave.
Never in a million years would anyone have guessed that the stoic Elvenking would invite a human to his palace on more occasions than his own kind and surely no one would have ever thought that he would start courting them.
Yet here he was, sitting in one of his many blooming gardens, swatting away the hand that was currently trying to gather his hair.
"Stop this," Thranduil's stern voice would've had any other shiver in fear of losing their head, though it only makes you giggle.
"Please, let me braid it again," you stable yourself with your hands on his shoulders and lean over, chest pressed against his strong back.
"No, you little nuisance. I shall not! You know of the meeting I will attend later, we do not have the time."
Even though he can't see your face, he knows you roll your eyes at him, he can feel it in the huff you let out before letting go of him. The warmth of your body disappears as you stand up from the bench and throw one challenging look over your shoulder.
Thranduil watches how you lift the skirts of the gown you're wearing, the finest of silks that you've adorned with little handmade bows from the village, and flop down into the grass. There is not one care on your face that the hems will surely stain and that there are perfectly suitable marmor benches all over the garden and only one of those occupied by Thranduil himself.
You seem to ignore them every time you two spend time out here, he noticed you are much more content with your naked feet buried in the high grass and your hair intertwined with the flowers that grow here.
At first, he couldn't understand the fascination you harbored with nature.
Of course, he had a deep appreciation for the forest surrounding his kingdom, the strong resistance of the trees had been an inspiration for the winding halls, the water flowing through the roots and gifting life and the ever so steady wind reminded someone who lived a thousand years that some things, though they change, never completely disappear.
You, on the other hand, could not be separated from nature in any way whatsoever. There had been the flowers, first only on your side of the bed when he'd invited you to sleep next to him, and one day he woke up to find a vase filled with Astilbe flowers on his nightstand and on his vanity as well.
You also spend most of your day either wandering through the woods (which left him restless and worried until you accepted the sword he had his blacksmith forge for you) or meeting him here in the gardens. He would never tell you but before you, he hadn't walked or maker-forbid, sat there for decades.
Now, he found himself soaking sunshine more days than not, reading Elvish poetry to you while you rested curled into his side with one of his hands brushing your hair, or, chasing you on his Elk through the forest, following the sound of your horse and your laughter.
Your infatuation with nature and the stubbornness of pulling him along made him fall for you, deeply and most ardently and he knew that one day he would need to survive the sight of forests and gardens and flowers without the urge to burn them to the ground for outliving you.
As he watches you examine the colorful flowers and gather them in your lap, he isn't sure if he will be able to contain that anger against the gods if the time comes.
You are oblivious to the dark clouds hanging onto his thoughts, he makes sure that you'll never see the heartbreak he lives through while loving you because he knows, he knows that you would do everything in your power to make him happy.
This is who you are, a human that lives and loves and pours all that you are into those around you, he sees it in the gentleness of your hands cupping the flowers before plucking them, in the way your tongue learned a new language for you wouldn't accept not studying it for an answer if you lived here.
You live to love and love to live.
Thranduil shifts, forgetting that there are guards stationed around the gardens who could see their King doing the unthinkable but he doesn't care.
Not with you sitting a few feet away from him, your dress spilled around you, a full smile on your face as you collect the flowers growing there for you, their little heads turning to you as if you are the sun for them as well, and not just for Thranduil.
If you notice him standing up, you give no sign, you don't even stop humming, and the smile that tugs at the corners of his mouth at this stubbornness is far too strong to stop it.
"Melethril nƮn," he says quietly and his shadow falls over your body. The symbolism and fear of him taking away the sun from you has him clench his jaw. His pain is impatient as if it doesn't know he's going to live longer than he wants to and that it has all the time to break him down.
He quickly shuts those thoughts away behind the sight of you tipping your head back to smirk at him.
This is not the time to dwell on the future, not if he can exist in the moments he shares with you instead of fearing the time when he'll have to think back on them.
"Don't tell me you missed me," you tease.
He scoffs and āsurprising you enough to let out a squeakā lowers himself onto his knees next to you.
Eye to eye, he feels much more comfortable, despite the stains that he knows now graze his robes.
"You know," he starts and lets his gaze wander over the flowers in your lap, however, you managed to collect this many of them in such a short time awes him, "the meeting can wait."
You catch onto the meaning instantly, your eyes lightening up even more. The golden rays of the setting sun reflect in them and he reaches forward to cup your face in the palm of his hand and gently leans towards you, capturing your lips in a long kiss that has you gasping.
"Now," Thranduil swipes his thumb over your lower lip, as you separate, tugging playfully at it and giving into another kiss before he continues, "Have your way with my hair, my love. I know you did not collect those flowers for any other reason."
You gasp ingeniously. "You are by far the wisest Elf I've ever met," you say and scoot āmaker, he makes a note to get another dress just like this made because surely this will be ruined by the time you leave the gardensā behind his back.
While you gather his hair in your hands, this time without him trying to stop you but relaxing into the soft tugging, you mumble: "So wise, they should make you King."
He chuckles at that. "Ah, but I would need a Queen by my side. Do you know where one could find onāahhh," his teasing words get swallowed by a sigh as your fingers collect some fine hairs on the side of his head and surely completely on accident run over the shell of his ear to the delicate tip.
"Ooops," you sing and just as his body calms, you repeat the action, even have the gall to scratch the skin with your nails and he melts into a puddle.
His ears burn, not just the one your breath hits but the other one as well and he can feel the blood shoot into his face as well, crumbling the stoic and straight-laced composure of the King who is already on his knees.
"You witch," he presses out between his clenched teeth and hears you giggle. "I should have never told you about that," he murmurs more to himself, trying to regulate his heart beating inside his chest like a wild rabbit on the loose.
You laugh once, a "Pah!" while you tug on his hair, "You didn't tell me," you say and he feels something get pushed inside the braid you are working on, "I found out all by myself."
Thinking back to the night that started this completely outrageous behavior trait of you fiddling with his ears whenever he doesn't pay you enough attention or he says something that teases you a bit too much, he can't tell if you are right or him.
A few years ago he would have shut you down completely because the King would never be wrong but now he grumbles under his breath, agreeing that you must be correct.
Then again, there are many new things that you brought into his life.
He laughs more freely, and not just out of spite of viciously.
He cares more, for you, for his son, for nature and sometimes even for the dwarfs he trades with.
He is formed by you, shaped by your untamable ways of never letting a rainy day ruin your mood.
He is nothing but wax in your hands.
Here, sitting in the gardens and letting you weave flowers in his precious hair, he is no King, he is just a soul yearning for your touch, a flower reaching to bloom in your golden light.
Thranduil's eyes flutter shut as you braid and weave and run your hands over his scalp and through his hair.
He may have fallen asleep, lulled into a trance by the warm sun caressing his face and your voice humming a melody as sweet as any words that you speak, because when you let go of the delicate braids and let them fall into the rest of his hair, he opens his eyes to a pink and purple sunset.
The birds sing their last song and the trees rustle, shaking their branches and leaves as if they would ready themselves for the animals coming to rest in them.
There is a pleasantly chilled breeze that comes with nightfall, one that brings the smell of flowers and grass.
"There," you press a gentle kiss to the skin right behind his left ear, "all done."
For a moment Thranduil is disappointed that you are finished but then he turns to find your smile and all is right.
"Thank you, meldanya," he says, already closing in to express his gratitude with a soft kiss.
You nudge your nose against his, eyes shut in contentment. "Thank you, for letting me. Le ni meleth," you say quietly.
"Always," Thranduil's gaze wanders over you, bathed in rosƩ and golden hues, the cheeks flushed from the air, your hair wild and untamed, and flowers all over your lap. He grabs a few of them, inspecting the stems and probing them with his sharp nails.
"Let me repay the favor," he effortlessly lifts you, smiling wide at the laugh bursting out of you as he sets you between his legs and onto his robes.
"I want my Queen to wear a fitting crown."
#thranduil fanfiction#thranduil x reader#thranduil x you#the hobbit fanfiction#the hobbit x reader#the hobbit x you#lotr fanfiction#lotr x reader#lotr x you
2K notes
Ā·
View notes
Note
when will you release āget him backā part 2?? šā¤ļøāš©¹
ā ššš ššš šššš ā p2 . . . nicholas chavez
SINGER!reader x EX!nicholas šš ą£ŖĖ Ö“š
PART ONE
SUMMARY, a jaw-dropping photo surfaced on social media, showing Y/N and Nicholas sharing a passionate kiss.
A/N, here you gošš
WARNINGS, none
ā„ļø 5.1M š¬ 15,467 ā¤ 8478
y/nuser āBad idea right?ā is number 1 on the billboard 100!!! thank you guys so so much for streaming & thank you to the person who was my inspiration while writing bc this song wouldnāt be here without youā¤ļøš
view all comments
one day ago
tatemcrae, everyone say thank you nicholas for the song of the summer !!!
ā¤æ y/nuser, TATE SHUSHHH
user, yall are teasing us atp
user, i js know y/n is screaming at tate over the phone rn
user, girl WE need answers
user, you canāt just post this and expect us NOT to go crazy
user, ik nick blushing hard asf rn
user, tate is out for blood omgš
user, NICK JUST REPOSTED
user, oh theyāre SO back
user, GIRL donāt play with us, are you and nick getting back tg?
user, y/n and nick part two????
user, iām not okay after reading the caption
ENEWS ARTICLE
Y/N AND NICHOLAS just broke the internetāand itās not just because of her latest chart-topping hit.
The two pop sensations, who famously dated before calling it quits over a year ago, are once again the talk of the town. Just days after Y/N dropped her fiery new single, āBad Idea Right?ā, fans are speculating that the song might be more than just a storyāit could be real-life drama unfolding before our eyes.
In the song, Y/N sings about how meeting up with an ex is a ābad idea,ā but admits sheās going to do it anyway. The cheeky, rebellious track quickly captured fansā attention with its catchy beat and vulnerable lyrics, but the real drama started when Y/N took to Instagram to thank the person who inspired her to write the song after it debuted at number one on the Billboard Hot 100.
Her cryptic caption read: āThank you to the person who inspired me to write this song, because it wouldnāt be here without you.ā Cue the speculationāfans immediately suspected that the song was about Nicholas, her ex.
But it didnāt stop there.
Just hours after her Instagram post, a jaw-dropping photo surfaced on social media, showing Y/N and Nicholas sharing a passionate kiss. The candid shot, which appears to have been taken during a night out, sent fans into an absolute meltdown, with many wondering if the pair are rekindling their romance after a year apart.
Twitter erupted with reactions, with one fan tweeting: āTHEYāRE KISSING. THIS IS NOT A DRILL. Y/N AND NICHOLAS ARE BACK TOGETHER!!ā Another user added: āShe wrote a song about seeing her ex and now theyāre making out?? ICONIC behavior.ā
Neither Y/N nor Nicholas has commented on the photo or addressed the growing speculation, but fans are convinced that the kiss confirms what āBad Idea Right?ā hinted atāthese two are giving love another shot.
Y/N and Nicholas first dated two years ago and were a fan-favorite couple, often seen together at industry events and collaborating on music. However, they shocked their followers when they announced their split last year, citing busy schedules and the pressures of fame as reasons for the breakup.
With āBad Idea Right?ā rocketing to the top of the charts and this steamy kiss photo making headlines, all eyes are on Y/N and Nicholas to see where this rekindled flame might lead. Is this the reunion their fans have been waiting for, or just a brief moment of nostalgia?
One thingās for sureāY/N and Nicholas are definitely back in the spotlight, and fans canāt get enough of the drama.
#nicholas alexander chavez#nicholas chavez#nicholas chavez smut#nicholas chavez x reader#nicholas chavez imagine#nicholas chavez fic#nicholas alexander chavez x reader#nicholas alexander chavez imagine#nicholas alexander chavez fic
377 notes
Ā·
View notes
Text
Tiny Dots on an Endless Timeline
pairing:Ā Logan Howlett x Female Mutant!Reader rating: Explicit (MINORS DNI; 18+) word count: 28.5k summary: "Itās been a few years since you'd passed, dying in one of the earlier Sentinel raids. He watched you die. He watched you beg and plead for him to get everyone to safety as you used your gift to keep the Sentinelās away. Itās his last memory of you; a memory that makes these missions harder. But the idea that stopping all of this from happening could save you, could give him more time with you, gave him something he too hasnāt felt in a long time: hope."
warnings: slow burn, angst/smut/fluff, pining, grief, death, panic attacks, intimacy, unprotected vaginal sex, nipple play, grinding, making out, overstimulation, aftercare
Authorās Note: In this fic, there is some dialogue from the movie used and lyrics from Roberta Flack's "The First Time I Ever Saw Your Face". I do not own the rights to either and they are only used to help the plot of the story.
Please read my pinned post before following me! Minors and ageless blogs will be blocked as this blogās content is NSFW.
[AO3 link]
Abandoned Chinese Temple; Shanxi Province, China; Year 2023
Logan didnāt have any high expectations when it came to missions. He has learned time and time again that every mission in this war creates loss. It seemed like every time they had a chance, that chance was quickly vanquished. He would convince himself for the longest time things will get better. They have to get better. All wars end eventually. Itās just a matter of when and what the casualties will be. But right now, the end is nowhere in sight.
They were safe for now, hiding out in an old temple that has aged and weathered away with the times. Being back with everyone, seeing who is left of them, sits heavy in Loganās chest. Having people he cared about ripped away like they were nothing, no proper burial or goodbye, aged him like nothing else. While physically he was still in his proper form and shape, mentally he was struggling.
Charles is giving a history lesson on the Sentinels, giving information many of the younger mutants were not fully aware of. Logan is aware of what this is leading up to, a plan Charles and Erik conjured up as a last resort. Itās smart, but even when it seems too good to be true, he must remind himself the same thing: do not have any expectations.
Logan notices Charles is quiet, and everyoneās attention is on Kitty. She had been talking and even though Logan had zoned out for a minute, the look on her face says it all; itās impossible.Ā
āYou have the most powerful brain in the world professor, but the mind can only stretch so far before it snaps. It would rip you apart. Iām sorry.ā
The gears in Loganās head were turning. He doesnāt quite know the limits of his mutation, especially in regard to traveling back in time. However, he has taken multiple bullets and slashes. He has been through some of the worst experimentation imaginable and his body always recovered. If his body could bear all of that, whatās to say he wouldnāt survive going back a few decades?
Itās not long before everyone agrees that Logan going back was the only solution left. Charles and Erik walk him through what needs to be done the minute he wakes up as his younger self. Patience is what Charles keeps telling him, but of course he knows that will be challenging alone. Not to mention all the bullshit they were doing in the early 70s. Bastards.
āI do apologize, Logan. But I have the utmost faith that you can do this.ā Charles chuckles, obviously hearing what Logan called them.Ā
āThere is nothing left to lose.ā Logan sighs.
āBut there is plenty to gain.ā Charles smiles, the hope on his features stronger than it had been in a long time. āTo bring our loved ones home. To bring her home.ā
Logan sucks in a breath, holding it for a second before releasing slowly. His hand goes to his neckline, pulling the chain from his suit to look at it and there it was. The engagement ring: a symbol of good things to come that will no longer come to fruition. A lifetime that was stripped away from him, a life with you no more.Ā
Itās been a few years since youād passed, dying in one of the earlier Sentinel raids. He watched you die. He watched you beg and plead for him to get everyone to safety as you used your gift to keep the Sentinelās away. Itās his last memory of you; a memory that makes these missions harder. But the idea that stopping all of this from happening could save you, could give him more time with you, gave him something he too hasnāt felt in a long time: hope.Ā
āItās good to see that spark in your eyes again, Logan.ā Charles says.Ā
Logan huffs under his breath. āI guess my emotions are starting to show on my sleeve, huh?āĀ
Charles laughs, before moving on into the other room. āYouāve grown a lot since Iāve first met you, Logan. And I have her to thank.ā
Logan looks down with a smile, reminiscing only a little bit. You really were something else.
It isnāt long before he is lying down on the stone table with Kitty explaining everything to him. It all makes sense, but he canāt shake the fact he will be the only one to remember this war: the trauma, the anger, the dread, the grief. Even when this war will have no bearing on the new world he hopes to come back to, he will still live with that pain.Ā
āAlright, Logan. Calm your mind and think peaceful thoughts. This may sting a little.ā He can hear the uneasiness in Kittyās voice, but he is ready. There is no pain he canāt endure.
He closes his eyes and thinks about the happier times. Some of his fondest memories are of him simply waking up to watch the sun rays glide across your body in the morning. How you would curl more into his chest and mumble words with no connection whatsoever. How you would wake up, kiss his chest and keep going until your lips met his. He would always ask you to use your gift in those moments, wanting to hold you just a little longer before the day started. You were his little piece of heaven.
Even as he feels Kittyās hands beside his head, he thinks maybe before he wakes up, heāll dream as his mind travels. Heāll dream of better times and that alone would hold him over during the impending pain. Because what he wouldnāt give to have you in his arms again. Thatās all he wants.Ā
His hand grips onto the ring attached to his dog tags, holding it close as he prepares to enter a different time full of the unpredictable.Ā
This is for you, baby. I will save you this time.
And with that thought, the hot pain scorches his temples and sets fire to his mind and then he is gone.
The Algonquin Hotel; New York City, NY; Year 1973
Music. Soft, calming music enters his conscience. It greets his mind, carefully shaking him awake. Then there is the sunlight. It is warm against his skin and he can feel it greeting him, telling him it is time to start the day. It all felt too familiar, and he thought he was dreaming. He felt something draped over his neck. It wasnāt heavy but there was a weight to it. He lifted his hand to touch and the moment he felt another hand, he smiled. Yes, I am definitely dreaming because here she is. He brought your dainty hand to his lips, kissing it gently as he intertwined his fingers with yours.Ā
But the moment is short lived as his other senses kick in. He took one inhale and knew immediately something wasnāt right. He turns to lay flat on his back, and he canāt help but curse under his breath. He feels like he is waking up to the pre-walk of shame as he looks at the woman beside him. He recognizes her, someone he had bodyguarded for a period of time and occasionally let her warm his bed. Well, he let her do a lot more than that.Ā
If only he had the foresight to have kept it in his pants.Ā
He sets her arm to her side and attempts to get out of the bed. He feels the water hold him back, and he groans deeply. Whoever invented water beds can fuck off.
He stands to his feet, taking in his surroundings. He recognizes the room and knows heās in the Algonquin. The room has its signature set up, with its warm tones on the walls and floor, the plant hanging from the ceiling. Heās been in this room before, or at least another copy of it. He sees the mirror between the two windows, and he walks up to see his reflection.Ā
Holy shitā¦
He looks the same, but the differences are prominent. The gray that was once at the corners of his hair and beard were gone. His head of hair looked fuller and was back to his original brown state. His body didnāt look much different, but he felt rejuvenated. It looked like his body hadnāt endured much. He looks down further and canāt help but smirk. Heh, still got it.
His sights go to the window, and he peeks through the blinds, only to once again let expletives fall quietly from his lips. He knew it had worked, but seeing Times Square without its vast array of screens made him take a step back. There is a strange emotion forming in his chest, and while he canāt describe it, he can tell itās good.
āHoly shit,ā he mutters in awe, taking in all the minute details. āIt worked.ā
He feels relief, as well as curiosity as he scans the city in its older form. Charles had said he was a very different man during this time. He wonders what he will be walking into, and how he will prepare for the moment where Charles will think heās full of shit.Ā
But his mind drifts as he looks down onto the street, street musicians on the side playing their instruments for spare change. He remembers you telling him that was something you did for a while with empty storage containers and food bins as makeshift drumsā¦ right here in the city.
His heart aches at the thought that you are out there somewhere, living your life day by day like nothing was wrong. You had told him you had a bit of a rebellious streak in the 70s, especially when you were playing music with a bunch of punks most nights and living out of a van. It reminded him a lot of himself, how he would have some kind of gig to make money and then go home to his trashy, beat up trailer.Ā
He always told you how he would have killed to see you in those times, and now that heās here heās tempted. Maybe he could leave right now and take a quick peak around the city. He wouldnāt even interact with you. He just wants to see you breathing and alive. He wants to see you living your life to the fullest, even if it pains him to not interfere.
He scoffs at himself, shaking his head and releasing the blind shade. No. He came here to do one thing, and that was to find Charles and Erik. He knows that if he plays his cards right, everything will turn out okay. The mutant population will continue to thrive, his friends will be alive, and you will continue to be by his side. Logan knows good things come to those that wait, so he will wait for you. Even if it fucking sucks to do so.
He goes to put on his pants, deep blue jeans with a big belt buckle, something he wore often. Some things really donāt change, do they?
He finishes covering himself, and the second his belt is strapped into place, he hears the door open. He turns to see three men standing by, talking loudly at the woman to get dressed as they stare him down.
Fuck.
Alleyway off of East 17th Street; New York, NY
āFuck!ā
You shoot up from your van seat, the thumping on the door startling you awake. You groan, holding your head as you blink slowly. You turn and see a cop at your window, signaling for you to roll the glass down. You grab the lever, rotating it slowly before squinting up at the man.
āMaāam, you cannot park nor sleep here,ā he emphasizes, snark laced in his voice. āYou need to get moving.ā
You see him whip out his ticket book, a quick scribble before he rips it and hands it over to you.Ā
āWhat? No warning?ā You say defensively. āYou gotta understand I was drunk last night. No points for not drinking and driving?ā
He looks you up and down, grimacing at your attire. āFor cretins like you, absolutely not. Unless you want to dispute the ticket in court, pay the fine.ā He turns away, no consideration or anything.Ā
You scoff as he turns to leave, and you roll your window up quickly. You watch as he walks away, and you bring your hand up, curling your fingers in. Everything slows down before freezing all together, only to then reverse in swift motion. You watch the cop rework his steps as time turns back, and you keep going until you see him drive back from which he came. You continue to let time go, so youād have enough of it to get the hell out of the alley, before releasing your fingers. Time slows again and then it goes on like nothing has changed. You glance at the ticket, noting he had filled the ticket out prior before to scaring the daylights out of you.
āFucking pig,ā you jeer, crumbling the ticket up and throwing it to the back.Ā
You start up the van, pulling out of the alley slowly before turning onto the busy street. There was high traffic per usual, people pushing to get to their jobs. You glance at the clock to see it is nine in the morning, and hum at the amount of time you have before your gig tonight. You are tempted to find another place to park, to sleep off the dreadful hangover plaguing your head. You knew taking all those shots the night prior was a terrible idea, but the drinks kept coming after such a good show. It helps too that your mutation keeps everything in check, a fact that makes you grin.
Being able to control time, rhythm and pace come naturally to you. You are always able to keep a perfect tempo and can change it up at your will. While punk music has never been about perfection, it always helps that you can pull everyone back in if things get too out of hand. People tell you youāre a prodigy, but if only they knew. Your bandmates donāt even know, and while you know they would embrace you, you felt it was always better to keep things hidden. Especially since you tend to use your power to save your ass far too often.
You decide to drive to central park, thinking some fresh air would stop your head from pulsing. You make a turn onto 44th Street, wanting to get to the main road for a straight shot to your new location. However, as you drive down, you start to feel strange. Your head was pulsing more, like your mind was trying to break down a door to give you a warning. It becomes borderline painful, and you canāt help but pull over onto the side of the street.Ā
You put your hazards on, opening the door before getting to the sidewalk. You squat down, dry heaving a little as you work to calm your mind down. You shut your eyes, rubbing your temples to ease the ache. And then as quickly as it came, it stopped. Your eyes open, looking around to see you are in front of the Algonquin.Ā
What the fuck?
āI must have really outdone myself last night,ā you mutter under your breath, standing up fully to get back into the van.
You get in and go to turn the hazards off, but you stop when you notice a man walking out of the hotel. You watch as he walks with purpose, getting into what looks to be a green 1970 Buick LaSabre. Your brain glitches, trying to process something that doesnāt exist. You donāt know him. Youāve never seen the man before. So why is your brain acting like you do?
You watch him drive off with a screech, and you watch until he is no longer in sight. You stare off into the distance for a minute, thinking what the hell just happened. It was new, and it isnāt like anything youāve ever experienced. The aftermath settles in your chest with a weird sense of longing and it makes you even more confused.
I definitely drank too much last night.
Xavierās School for Gifted Youngsters; Westchester, NY
Logan knew the peaceful thoughts wouldnāt come easy, but god damn the entire morning has been far from peaceful.Ā
The altercation at the hotel ended with the three men on the floor, dead or alive he wasnāt sure. He couldāve handled it better, but the shock from seeing his old claws and the excruciating pain from the bullets sent him into a frenzy. He had truly forgotten how painful bullets felt when his bones werenāt covered in metal.Ā
Driving from New York City to Westchester didnāt help his mood. Heād rather suffer a thousand stab wounds than drive in traffic and deal with dumbass drivers. The only upside was he had time to think about his approach with Charles, and how he was going to convince him that he was serious. He had a pretty good idea of what he needed to say and was feeling confident. As long as there were no obstacles, he could get this done.Ā
But that all shattered when Hank opened the damn door. He hadnāt even considered his presence, but Hank was a pretty understanding guy. Heād understand, right?
Boy was he wrong.Ā
He definitely underestimated how strong Hank was, especially after seeing him as a younger man. Their tussle had landed him onto the marble table in the center of the foyer and with Hank roaring at him from the chandelier. It was no surprise that the one person who still lives here came out: Charles.
Loganās first thought after looking at Charles was how much of a bum he appeared to be. He wasnāt one to judge, but to see his mentor in such rough shape was perplexing. It looked like the optimism he always held so close was far gone, which was made clear when he laughed in Loganās face.
Charles did say he would need to be patient with him, but fuck he was a pain in the ass. Logan understood, as he wasnāt much better when he arrived at the mansion, but if he was this much of an ass as Charles is now, God help him.
At this moment, he was working answers out of Hank, trying to piece something together that would convince Charles that what he was saying is true. Then he heard footsteps from the stairs.
āIāll help you. Iāll help you get to Raven.ā
Which now leaves them all in Charlesās old office, discussing plans on how to retrieve Erik without getting caught. Erik had explained where he was before Logan got here, but now knowing what he did to get there makes this more complicated. Not that it already wasnāt, but it is for certain that his cell will be guarded to hell and back.
Once again, fucking bastards.
āWhat resources do we have?ā Logan asks, hoping that Charles or Hank know someone with an ability to get them in and out.Ā
āWellā¦ā Charles draws out. āI may know one person who could do it, but she will need some convincing. If we can find her, that is.ā Charles chuckles, his hand rubbing his face in disbelief.
Hankās eyes go wide. āYou donāt meanā¦ā
āSheās the only person that could pull it off, with her mutation and all.ā Charles goes to stand, taking a swig of his whiskey in the process.
āWho is she?ā Logan asks curiously, the odd mix of dismay and confidence in their tones intriguing. However, the second he hears your name, he freezes.Ā
āWhat?ā Logan says with uneasiness, something the other two donāt pick up on.
āShe was a recruit back when Erik and I were forming a team to fight against Sebastian Shaw.ā Charles explains.
āShe can control time,ā Hank jumps in enthusiastically. āMove it forward, backward, stop it all at once.āĀ
āShe left shortly after Cuba,ā Charles takes a drink with that. āShe said she didnāt want to be at odds with Erik and I.ā
āIs there anyone else we could use?ā Logan interjects quickly. The idea of seeing you is oh so tempting, but there is a fear that any sort of interaction with you will tear you away from him. To see you is one thing. To interact with you is another.
āThere are mutants that can stop time telepathically, but she can do it all, which is why she is our best bet.ā Charles adds, waving his hand like he is explaining something complicated. āThe only problem is I have no idea where she went. I havenāt seen or heard from her in over a decade.ā
Logan canāt help but scrunch his face, biting the inside of his cheek in contemplation. He knows he canāt let his selfishness get in the way of the lives at stake. If you really are the best bet to get Erik out, then so be it.Ā
āFine, but we just use her to get Erik. After that, she is done.ā
āWell, we have to find her first.ā Charles shrugs. āI canāt use my powers, so we will need to find an alternative.ā
āWe have a phone book.ā Hank suggests, already walking to the stack of books behind the sofa.Ā
āThat is not going to help, but she was in a band around this time right here in New York.ā Logan says, looking at Hank as he grabs the phone book. āShe was playing gigs most nights in 1973.ā
Charles and Hank look at one another, seemingly perplexed by this new knowledge. āHow do you know this?ā Charles speaks for them both.
āLetās just say she becomes a protege of sorts for you in the future.ā Logan leaves out the rest. This wasnāt the time to get into the details of his relationship. āI know the band name. We can call popular hole in the wall venues around the city to see if her band is playing tonight.ā
āIāll start looking through and making calls,ā Hank offers, and sits down at Charlesā desk.
āLet us know if you find anything. The minute we know something, we leave.ā Logan says.Ā
Logan leaves before a response is given and goes outside. The sun is bright, surprisingly not too cold for this time of year. He leans against the old brick, taking out a cigar he magically had in his pocket along with a lighter he had snatched off the desk. He cuts the end with his claw, and lets it sink back in as he puts it to his lips. He goes to light, his hand a little shaky but he eventually gets a good burn going, the taste entering pleasantly into his mouth and lungs.
He puffs out some smoke, sighing at how the events of today have turned. He had made the decision not to see you, and now he is going to have to. Itās a double-edged sword; he gets to see the beautiful woman he fell in love with, while also taking the risk of altering his and your future together. So many what ifās: what if something bad happens to you? What if you all get caught and you get sent to prison? What if you somehow realize you donāt like him in this timeline?
What if you die and he canāt save you again?
That thought alone makes him choke a little, lost in so much thought the smoke overwhelmed him. No, he canāt think like that. There is too much on the line for his emotions to play games. Besides, maybe in the end, regardless of if he ends up miserable, youād wake up in the future safe.
He just wants everyone he loves safe.
Maxās Kansas City Nightclub; Manhattan, NY.Ā
Logan has been to many different nightclubs. Having been a bodyguard for hire, these types of places were nothing out of the ordinary. There were plenty of young women he was hired to watch, ones that wanted to rebel a little, that would come to these clubs to have a taste of freedom. They all had the same shit: drugs, alcohol, sex, and bad decisions.
He was starting to feel the latter.
It isnāt that he disagrees with Charles. Your mutation is powerful and would create easy access to Erikās hold cell. You are the obvious choice. However, he canāt stop debating with himself on if dragging you into this will change the future; one where you and him are never to be. The thought alone makes his stomach turn.
Along with that, just seeing you in the flesh is enough to send him into disarray. Logan is far from a nervous man, but it has felt like an eternity since heās seen your face. One look at you and he may not be able to hold it together.Ā
Him and Charles are sitting at the bar, nursing their shitty whisky. It burns the same, and by this time Logan is finishing his fourth glass, waving down the bartender for a fifth.
āListen,ā he hears Charles yell over the loud crowd. āI know you can hold your liquor but you should probably slow down.ā
āTrust me, bub,ā Logan shoots the fifth round down his throat, swallowing quickly. āYouāll want me as loose as possible for this.ā
āWhat is with you? Is this about her?ā Charles nods to the empty stage. āYou acted very strange when discussing her today. Were you two close?āĀ
Logan looks down into his glass, his mouth opening and shutting not knowing what to say. It doesnāt matter, however, because before he can make a decision, drums are starting to beat down heavily.Ā
ā1, 2, 3, 4!ā
Drums start bumping, along with guitar and bass chords. The crowd starts running to the back where the stage is located, jumping and vibrating to the music. Logan looks to the stage, and lo and behold there you are on the drum kit.Ā
Even when you were no longer playing with a group, you played a lot at the mansion. You often taught music classes for students who just wanted to have some fun. It was also your way of releasing some steam. Charles had to soundproof the music room so your constant drum smashing wouldnāt cause a disturbance.Ā
But here you are, keeping perfect tempo as you keep up your rhythm. Seeing you in your element was so much more than he thought. You were an animal on those drums, totally submerged in your performance. You were smiling, interacting with other band members during each song. Whether it be adding vocals, doing theatrics with your drumsticks, or silly banter, you looked like you were meant to be up there.Ā
āSheās really good!ā Charles yells over the music, and Logan can only nod. He is immersed in you, his nerves gone as he takes you in. He missed you so badly that seeing you again has given him some grace. He needs to be careful, but right now it doesnāt matter. He just wants to enjoy seeing you happy and alive.Ā
The set goes on for another twenty minutes, the songs short and quick. The crowd was getting more rowdy as the set continued. They were shouting lyrics back, heads rocking and popping as they jumped around. He sees you looking out into the crowd, only for your eyes to meet his own and then to his right. Your eyes went wide, and he turned to see Charles lifting his hand with a small wave.Ā
āWell, the cats out of the bag.ā Charles mutters, not leaving eye contact with you.
Logan sees the shock in your features, and can sense you picking up the tempo slightly. Your bandmates didnāt seem to mind, however, as they picked it up as well and the crowd seemed to love it. The last cord plays, and the crowd cheers.
āWeād like to thank yāall for coming. Goodnight!ā The vocalist said before the band walked off the small stage. You, on the other hand, didnāt follow.Ā
He watched you make your way through the throngs of people. The look on your face is unclear, but the moment you are in front of him, itās like itās just you two.
He fully takes you in. You looked about the same, maybe a little younger. You were wearing jeans with holes at the knees, beat up converse, and a white v-neck that revealed your collarbones quite nicely. A black leather jacket, that has seen better days, pulls it all together. There was a sheen of sweat at your temples, creating a shine in the baby hairs. Logan only had two thoughts in his head: that he desperately wishes he could pull you into his embrace and that you looked so sexy like this.
So incredibly sexy.
āWell, look what the cat dragged in.ā You smirked, hands on your hips.Ā
āI must say this is a pleasant surprise.ā Charles laughs, standing up from his seat. āItās so good to see you, darling.ā
āItās good to see you too, and walking for that matter!ā You pulled him in, hugging him tightly and kissing his cheek. It makes Logan shift slightly, a little jealousy lingering even though there is nothing he could do about it.Ā
You let Charles go, and you look at Logan, quirking your head as your eyes scan him up and down. He keeps his eyes on you, not budging.
āSo Charles, whoās your friend?āĀ
āAh, yes, well this here is-ā
āLogan.ā
Loganās eyes go wide when your hands shoot to your head, gasping as you grip your head. He reaches out, wanting to do something to ease whatever is going on, but as soon as it starts, it stops.
āFuck, Iām sorry. I must have really overdone it with the drinking last night.ā You mumbled.
Logan smirks. āA real party animal, huh?āĀ
āMore like donāt know when to quit,ā you sigh. āSo, how did you know that I was playing here tonight? Or better yet, how did you even know I was doing this? Keep tabs on me up there?āĀ
āActually, Logan mentioned it. He-ā Charles starts, but Logan is quick to hit his back, making him double over from the impact.
āWhat he means is it is a long story, and we should go somewhere else to discuss it.ā Logan says with urgency, hoping his tone takes your attention away from how heās acting.
āWhy not talk about it here?ā You shrug, going to the bar to order a drink. āThe night is still young.ā
āThis conversation needs to be for your ears only. It is highly confidential.ā Charles interjects.
āHmm,ā you donāt look at him, finally getting the bartenderās attention. āTrying to drag me back into some bullshit, Charles?ā
āBullshit that could save everyoneās life, sweetheart.ā Logan says. He isnāt used to your slight indifference, but it is something he is going to have to get used to. You are a different person during this time, after all.
You turn back to them, sighing before you lift your hand up, middle finger and thumb pressed together before snapping. Everything stops instantly. Drinks that are being poured freeze. People talking with others go still with mouths open trying to get the next word. The lights stop flickering, some looking to be out while others keep the light.Ā
Time goes still. Except for the three of them.
His eyes go to look at you, where you are wearing a smug look.Ā
āMy ears only, right?ā You say, lifting your drink like you are cheering for something. āSo start talking.ā
The Pentagon; Arlington, VA
The Pentagon was incredibly crowded, which was to be expected. Tours were taking place. People were rushing to get to their posts. Security was at each corner of the building. There is a lot of commotion, yet you knew this would be a piece of cake. And yet, you couldnāt believe you had agreed to do this.Ā
When Logan had explained he was from the future, a future where everyone will eventually become slaughtered, it took you aback. It was hard to think about. You knew the U.S. Government has an aversion to mutants, but to create a weapon to wipe them clean with Ravenās DNA? You shouldnāt be surprised, not with everything currently going on, but you are.
The plane ride was fairly quiet. Hank and Charles were in the cockpit, leaving Logan and you in the main lounging area. You had noticed Logan looking at you quite a bit throughout the quick ride. It was like he wanted to say something, but he couldnāt. You couldāve sworn you saw something akin to pining in his eyes, but you brushed it off. You didnāt know if it was his way of figuring you out, or if there was something else.Ā
You wondered if you and him are connected somehow. With the headaches coinciding around Logan, you couldnāt help but wonder if your mutation is doing something new, something it couldnāt do before because you have never met a time traveler. Not until now.Ā
Maybe you will get answers later. Right now, you have a job to do.Ā
You are standing in the middle of the Pentagonās main sector, mentally preparing yourself for this. You would have to hold time for thirty minutes, enough time for Charles and Hank to reach and retrieve Erik from his cell. This only gives them fifteen in and fifteen out.
āAre you sure about this?ā You hear Logan say from beside you. āWe can find another way if it is going to be too much.ā
He sounds so sincere, and it oddly does something for you. Here is a man you donāt know much about caring about your wellbeing. For someone of his apparent nature, it is endearing.Ā
āIāll be fine, but I appreciate you caring enough to ask.ā You smile at him, and the smile he gives back makes your stomach flutter. Just a little bit.Ā
āAlright here goes nothing.ā You turn to look at Charles and Hank. āThe second everything stops, grab an authorized personnel card off of one of the security guards and go quickly.āĀ
āAnd youāre sure we are the best people to do this?ā Charles mutters, looking torn.
You smirk at him. āOh, Charles. You may not realize this. but he cares about you. Maybe this is the reunion you need.āĀ
āI doubt it,ā he grumbles but nods at you to go on.
You look forward, hands slightly in front of you before snapping your fingers. It isnāt instant like it usually is. It travels, people coming to a stop before everything is completely still and silent. It takes a lot of focus and precision on your part. Youāve never had to freeze an entire building, let alone one that runs so deep.Ā
As told, Charles and Hank make quick work, grabbing a card from a guard right by the door they needed to go through. Once the door shut, it was just you and Logan, who had insisted he stay in case something happens.
You sense his eyes on you again, just as he had on the plane. Minutes pass, and you think maybe he will say something, but no. Itās just radio silence. You could handle it on the plane, but right now? Absolutely not.
You roll your eyes at his behavior. āYou psychoanalyzing me or something? I can multitask, you know.ā
Logan moves so he is facing you, and he is only two steps away from you. You notice he is much taller than you, maybe by a foot. His attire is oddly fitting for someone from the future. The brown leather, the feather pattern on his shirt, and god the big ass belt buckle with blue jeans that fit his legs so nicely. You had to ask.
āSo, if you are from the future, I gotta ask: did you come dressed like that?āĀ
He looks down at what he is wearing, inspecting himself. āWhatās wrong with how Iām dressed?ā
He looked so self-conscious. It was cute. āNot at all. Just not something I expected someone from the future to wear.ā
āWell, technically I am in my younger selfās body. This is how I dressed in 1973.ā He chuckles. āI guess I still dressed like this though, before everything went to shit.ā
āSo, you an old man now or something?āĀ
He smirks at you. āIām probably older than your great grandfather, sweetheart.ā
Your eyes widen at that statement. āIs that your mutation? Being immortal?ā
āAmongst other things,ā he holds out his hand, and within a blink of an eye claws are coming out from in between his knuckles. You tilt your head in awe, admiring the bones that are tinted yellow. He then lets them sink back in, the wounds healing instantly.
āRegenerative healing. Thatās pretty neat,ā you say. āStill must hurt though.ā
āEvery time,ā Logan hums. āBut you get used to it.āĀ
āI see,ā you murmur, not knowing what to say after that. Luckily, Logan keeps going.
āYou must practice a lot for you to stop time in a place like this.ā
You canāt help the chuckle that slips your lips. āI wouldnāt call it practice. I just get myself into stupid situations.ā
Logan grins, taking a step closer to you. āYeah? Like what?ā
āWell, a few weeks ago we got into a tussle with the police. They decided to start some shit at another club we were playing at. Gave me a black eye even.ā You answered, oddly making light of the memory.
āBet you still looked just as pretty,ā Logan joked, but with the way he was looking at you, youād think he was being serious.
āY-yeah,ā you stutter. āBut then they started making arrests. Thatās when I shifted time back. Warned my bandmates before they came in. They were confused about the black eye though.ā
This made Logan laugh, and you swear your heart did a double take. Why was this man affecting me like this?
āI like the idea of you getting a little rough. Itās very different.ā Logan purrs, and before you can ask what he means, you feel your powers start to weaken.
āShit,ā you curse, hands clenching in front of you.Ā
āWhatās wrong?āĀ
You grunt in response, trying to pull yourself together. āHow long has it been since theyāve left? Shouldnāt they be back by now?ā
āItās been about thirty minutes,ā he confirms. āYou are certain time has stopped in this entire building?ā
āIām very certain. I wouldnāt be struggling right now if it werenāt.ā You say with gritted teeth, getting lightheaded. āLogan, I told them thirty minutes. If I hold on any longer, Iāll pass out.ā
Logan is looking around, searching for something before he takes off in a path you canāt see. You are breathing heavily, trying hard to focus but you can feel yourself slipping. Itās like you are on a cliff holding onto loose rocks waiting for them to slip.Ā
āOkay look at me, baby.ā
Baby?
You look to see he is holding a key card. He holds your attention, nodding to the door Charles and Hank went through. āWe are going to walk over to the door. Iām going to open it with this. When I do, let go.āĀ
āFuck, what if we get caught?ā You whimper, the mental pain starting to get stronger.Ā
āI wonāt let that happen again.āĀ
Again?
Before you could contemplate his words, heās got his arm wrapped around your torso. His left hand holds your leather clad wrist, keeping you steady as two start to walk.
āSmall steps, small steps. Thatās right,ā Logan encourages, keeping pace with you as you walk slowly.Ā
Heās holding you gingerly, like you will break if he lets go. Itās strange but you welcome it. You've never had anyone hold you with such care before. You were rough around the edges. Most people think you can handle anything, but itās almost as if Logan has done this before; a common feeling youāve had ever since you laid eyes on him.
He stopped at the door, pulling the keycard from his left pocket and scanning it. The light blinks green and he pushes it, keeping it open with his foot as he looks at you.
āYou ready?āĀ
You nod slightly. āJust tell me when.ā
āNow!ā
You immediately drop your hands, and Logan is shoving you through the threshold. You gasp holding onto your chest as Logan keeps his grip on you so you donāt fall. You take a deep breath, calming yourself down enough to keep going.Ā
āWe need to get moving. We will get caught if we stay here.ā
Logan nods, letting go of you to look at the map beside the door. You miss his touch already.
āWe need to get to this elevator,ā he points to the elevator in the south wing. āItāll take us to the kitchen that leads to the lower cell.ā
Without another word, you two are running. You put your hands up again, freezing time again but only in the areas you two are passing. It makes your brain fuzzy, but you push on. Logan looks back at you from time to time to check on you, worry evident on his face.
āIām fine, keep going!ā You press.Ā
Before you two know it, you are both at the elevator. Logan is clicking the button repeatedly like itāll come faster, and within a few seconds it opens. You both rush in there, and Logan repeats his treatment to the closing button before the doors ultimately close.Ā
You lean against the metal wall, taking a deep breath and praying to whatever God is listening that no one gets on this damn elevator. You donāt know if you have it in you to protect you and Logan if someone gets on.Ā
Luck was on your side, however. The elevator dinged, and when you looked up you saw it was listed as the floor you were getting off on. A sigh of relief escapes your lips, but it gets sucked back into your throat when you hear alarms. The elevator doors open and a multitude of men with chef kitchen attire run in completely drenched.Ā
Before either of you get crushed by the masses, you grab Loganās hand and yank him out. You hear more commotion coming from down the hall, yelling and crashing. You walk past Logan, jogging towards the noise. You make it to the door, hearing the voices loud and clear, and you bust in to see the insanity.Ā
The kitchen was a wreck. The water is still coming as the alarm blares on. You see Hank trying to pull Charles off of Erik, but he wonāt budge. Everything is a mess, and something about it sends you spiraling.
āOh fuck no!ā
You are hurling yourself at these men. You grab Charlesās jacket, and with the help of Hank yank him off of Erik. Hank flies to the floor, and you slam Charles to the wall. He looks so pitiful, and it makes you sick.
āI said thirty fucking minutes,ā you seethe. āMy power has limits, and this is the reason you all pushed them today? Because you couldnāt help yourself?ā
Charles is silent, looking at you with complete guilt. Good, you think. He should feel fucking guilty.
āI could have passed out. You are so lucky I had Logan, or your ass would be going to prison.ā
You let go of him, shoving him more into the wall as a warning, and turn to the other two knuckleheads. Hank and Erik are standing, looking at you in shock. They are really about to be in shock, however, because you werenāt done.
āYou,ā you pointed at Hank. āI know you hate your mutation, but your self-hatred almost fucked us all. I know you arenāt that fucking weak, especially to pull his scrawny ass off of that dumbass.ā
āWell, itās good to see you too-ā you hear Erik start. You donāt let him finish.
āAnd you,ā you shout, walking up to him and gripping the white prison uniform at the collars. āI know you are probably very shocked to see all of us. However, and understand this clearly, you do as we say. I am not about to have my future or anyone elseās fucked up because of you. You hear me?āĀ
Erik smirks at you. āYes, maāam.ā God, you wish you could wipe that look off his face.
You huff, shoving him away from you. āLetās get out before we get caught.āĀ
āIt might be too late for that.ā You hear Charles say, and you turn to see five Pentagon security members, plastic guns drawn.
āCharles,ā Erik calls out. āDo something, Charles.ā
āI canāt,ā Charles says under his breath.
āHands up or we will shoot!ā One of the security officers yells, their fingers right on the trigger.
You groan at how worthless everyone is acting, and using your anger, you snap your fingers and immediately clench your fists. The cops freeze in place, and you are panting as your muscles suck up all the oxygen in your body.
āSomeone better knock them out before I give out and-ā you are cut off by the sound of a pan connecting to skulls.Ā
Logan was knocking these men out with ease, his strength apparent as the metal clangs. He is moving like a natural, arm swinging precisely to hit each man standing. It was captivating and watching him breathing in and out in his drenched clothes was very hot. You could feel your underwear start to cling to you, and you knew it wasnāt just from the water coming from the sprinklers.
You let go, hands going to your knees as you catch your breath once again. Logan is immediately by your side.
āLetās get out of here,ā Logan commands, and he wraps his arms around your torso to sit you straight up.
āI got you, sweetheart. Just hold onto me,ā Logan says in a low tone, like talking any louder would disturb the already broken peace.
Without a word, you grip onto him and you two walk out of the kitchen to the elevator. The others are waiting for you two, keeping the elevator open and soon enough you are all in.Ā
Itās amazing to you that you all made it out. Charles was smart enough to know to go through a back exit, and luckily Erik was able to move the cameras to face a different direction. It was as if none of you were ever there, other than the fact those security officers saw you. Youāre hoping Logan hit them hard enough for them to forget.
Charles had parked the rental car close by, shoving yourselves in before going off onto the road. You are in the middle in the backseat, with Logan still holding you close. Erik was to you right, working to put on the jacket and hat Charles had brought to make him less recognizable.Ā
Well, less recognizable to fucking idiots maybe.
āAlright, where to now?ā Erik asks, still trying to get the jacket on in the packed backseat.
āWe need to get her home.ā Logan replies.
āWhat?!ā You shout, feeling complete disbelief. āWhy am I going home?!ā
āListen, thank you for your help. But this is dangerous, and you shouldnāt get mixed up in it.ā Logan continues, his tone a lot more serious than it has been today.Ā
āI just fucking infiltrated the Pentagon and now you are worried about dragging me into this mess?āĀ
Logan is quiet, and you only get more pissed off. Who the hell does he think he is?Ā
You push his arm off of you, twisting your body so you are looking directly at him. āI donāt know if you noticed, but if I werenāt there today, you all wouldāve been fucked. I care about what happens, and yāall need me. So, I apologize but Iām fucking coming.ā
Loganās shoulders drooped, his hand going to rub his face. He breathes out, as if heās trying to calm himself down, before turning to look out the window.
āFine.ā
āGood, so we are in agreement.ā You say, before laying back against the middle cushion.Ā
You let your eyes close as the sounds of the cars and bumps of the road lull you to rest. The chill from the water sets in, and subconsciously you find yourself wishing those strong, warm arms that had held you so much today would wrap around you once more.
The Atlantic Ocean
Fucking bastards.
Logan doesnāt understand how Charles and Erik were ever friends. Imagining them as anything but seemed easier. Maybe itās the full rage of testosterone in their younger bodies. It would explain the extreme yelling, bickering, anger, grief. He understands the need to release all of that, but he already hates flying. Getting the man who can control metal upset isnāt a great idea in an aircraft.Ā
Things eventually calm down, but whatās left is now a mess of broken glass and ceramic. Charles exits the lounge to go to the cockpit, and at the angle Logan is at he can see Charles with his head in his hands. He feels bad truthfully, seeing him so broken down and beaten up isnāt easy. It reminds him a lot of himself. Looking at Erik, who looks like he hadnāt been in a prison for almost a decade, irritates him slightly. But what irritates him more is that he almost crashed the fucking plane.
āSo, you were always an asshole.āĀ
As if on cue, he hears the door to the backroom open and you walk out. You are rubbing your eyes, holding onto the wall as your eyes double take on the view.Ā
āLooks like I missed something eventful,ā you yawn, walking over to start picking up broken glass.
āHey, donāt do that. Let him do it,ā Logan says, pulling a cigar out and putting it under the lighterās flame. āHe did this. Let him pick this shit up.ā
Erik puts his hand up, letting you know heās got it. As he starts cleaning up, Logan watches you carefully walk over to sit across the table from him. You lean across it, crossing your arms as you leave your eyes on him. āGive him a break. Heās been through a lot.ā
Logan looks your way, taking another puff of his cigar. āYeah, and he couldāve killed us.ā
You shrug, leaning back into the seat while keeping eye contact. āCouldnāt have been that bad. I woke up to the plane flying smoothly.ā
Logan takes another puff, a grin wanting to desperately pull onto his lips. Still a heavy sleeper.
āI think you just sleep like the dead,ā Logan jokes, leaning forward with his elbows settling on the table.
āI guess.ā Your head turned to the window, eyes closing and opening in slow succession. āBut seriously, what did we expect? They may have similar ideals for mutant kind, but they are different sides of the same coin. Iām sure seeing one another after a whole decade makes it hard to keep everything bottled up.ā
Logan nods in agreement because he can relate. When he saw you for the first time after what felt like a lifetime, it took everything in him not to pull you in. Even now, watching you as the light reflects on your face, he wishes he could seat you in his lap like he would after a long day of training. Having his arms around you as you curled into his side, feeling your warmth against him, made everyday worth living.Ā
There was some reprieve when he was helping you after you stretched your powers to your limits, but he longs for you. He longs for your body, your kisses, your comfort, your love. He longs to show you how much you mean to him, to tell you he loves you. It is too much sometimes, especially in the kitchen at the Pentagon. Seeing how aggressive you were and smelling your scent change to something of want is making everything so much harder. He was already so worked up, he could have easily snapped, but he didnāt and it hurts. It hurts so fucking bad.Ā
There is a part of him that wishes you werenāt here, so he could finally focus, but in reality he is thankful you chose to stay. He knows it is for selfish reasons, but at the same time he knew theyād be lost without you. You give him the strength to keep going; the strength to push forward, even when itās painful to keep everything he wants to do and say inside. So, he gets it. He gets it so much.
Logan notices you looking at him, and realizes he was staring. He coughs, trying to hide his embarrassment as he puts the cigar to his lips.Ā
āSo, is that why you didnāt join either of them after Cuba?āĀ
Your smile is small, like you were reminiscing. āBoth had very good points, and it makes sense why they believe the way that they do. Charles tends to see the best in people and Erik sees the worst.ā
āSo, you couldnāt pick a side?ā
āI was only seventeen at the time,ā you say. āI wasnāt about to let two grown men tell me what to do, and Iām glad I didnāt. Iām not their keeper.āĀ
āSmart girl.ā
You laugh at this, and it feels like dopamine is being injected into his brain. This is the first time he has feltā¦ Joy? Happiness? He could listen to it for days.
āYou said they sent you here together. Do they actually become friends again?ā
Logan sends a small smile your way, but shakes his head. āItās complicated.ā And it really is. Logan is sure that if the Sentinelās never came to be, they would still be at some sort of odds against each other. āLike you said, same coin, different sides.ā
āI see,ā you start to tap your fingers against the table, a nervous habit Logan had picked up on when you two met the first time. āSince we are talking, you never answered my question.ā
Logan lifts an eyebrow in confusion, not realizing anything was asked.Ā
āThe other night at Maxās. Charles said you knew where to find me. How did you know?ā
Logan only hums, taping his cigar to let the ash pool into the crystal tray. He feels like revealing anything about the future is a bad omen, but his restraint is wearing thin, and he canāt help but relent.
āYou told me.ā
āSo, we know each other in the future?ā
Oh, you donāt even know the half of it, sweetheart.
āWe do,ā Logan breathes out.Ā
You leaned in closer, your jaw in your hands. āAre we friends?ā
Not quite. āSure, yeah. Weāre friends.ā
āAre we close?ā You are smiling big, teeth showing. He missed that smile.Ā
āVery close,ā he leans in towards you, faces a few inches apart. āSo close that I know everything about you.ā
āYeah?ā Your eyes flash. āLike what?ā
āAsk me something.ā He is feeling cocky now.
āOkay,ā you draw out, looking around as you contemplate, before your eyes shine back at him. āWhatās my favorite band?āĀ
āThey donāt exist yet. Not for another couple of decades.ā
āWhat? Really?ā You gasped.
āThe genre doesnāt even exist yet,ā Logan grinned, seeing you surprised going right to his head. āBut right now, it would probably be Velvet Underground.āĀ
āWow, youāre good.ā You compliment. āOkay, how about my favorite color?ā
āReally?ā
āShould be easy if you know me so well.ā
Logan vibrates, loving the back and forth happening between the two of you. āItās blue. Dark blue especially because you love how the sky looks after the sun has set.ā
You look down, and Logan wasnāt having any of that, lifting your chin with one finger. He moves forward just an inch more. āYouāre going to have to ask something a little harder, sweetheart.ā
You shy away from him, still staying close, a rush of pink added to your cheeks. Fuck, you are so beautiful.Ā
āOkay, well,ā you say, still looking away from him. āThere is something else I can do with my mutation. What is it that I can do?ā
Logan knows this answer far too well. Itās the only reason he was able to be with you as he is, even though he truly believes he wouldāve fallen in love with you regardless.
āYou can stop yourself from aging.ā Logan whispers, not wanting the others to hear. āYou use time to stop the clock in your body. You did it for a year after Cuba to try and gain back the time that was lost.ā
āI wanted to finish high school, as crazy as that sounds.ā You chuckle.
āMore like you wanted to continue doing marching band,ā Logan says, laughing as you smack his arm.Ā
āOh God, you must really know me if you know that!ā You cackle. āI started aging again after I graduated though.ā
āWhy is that? Didnāt want to stay seventeen forever?ā Logan tries to make light of it, but he knows why. He always knows why.
āWell,ā you paused, leaning back into your seat with your hands still on the table. āThe war in Vietnam got worse. There were a lot of boys I went to school with that got drafted, and they didnāt make it. If they did, they came back completely altered. Made me realize this isnāt a world worth living in for too long, I guess.ā
āI get the feeling,ā Logan responds, to which part he isnāt sure.
āAnd now that I know that the future's so bleaker, is there really a reason to want to keep living for longer than you need to?ā You were looking at him so genuinely, and it broke his heart.Ā
He sets his cigar down in the tray and goes to take your hands into his with a squeeze. He looks right at you, hoping what heās conveying reaches your ears with sincerity and hope. āWe can change that tomorrow, and when we do, you will have a reason to keep going.āĀ
The conversation continues for a while, going back to answering questions for you and seeing your face light up when he guesses correctly, and he does every single time. Itās dark out now, the new day counting down to start. Logan can feel himself getting tired, but you? You were dozing off fast with your head against the plane's wall.Ā
āHey,ā Logan reaches over the table, shaking your shoulder. āYou should go lay down. We have a long day tomorrow.ā
You yawn, stretching your limbs before blinking a few times. āAre you sure? I slept in for most of the day. You should take it.ā
āI insist. Besides, Iām sure you donāt want to sleep in here with these bozos.ā Logan looks in the direction of Erik and Charles, one sleeping in the chair and the other sprawled on the couch.
āI suppose youāre right, but will you be okay?āĀ
āIām used to sleeping wherever, so this is nothing. Please, get some sleep.ā
Logan watches you get up from your seat, walking over to him before leaning down to his ear. āGoodnight, Logan. Sweet dreams.ā
He feels your lips against his cheek, and he inhales sharply. He turns to watch you go into the backroom, and after a long few seconds he releases in an exhale. He puts his head in his hands, rubbing his temples in some poor attempt to calm himself, but his thoughts run fast and there is no stopping them.
He can feel himself close to snapping. Itās like everything you do is calling him in, daring him to do something. He knows it is insane. You donāt know him. If he were to do something, confess everything, what would that do for the future? Everything he says and does can change what the future holds, and a selfish part of him doesnāt care. When it comes to you, he is a selfish bastard.
He leans back in his seat, closing his eyes. Tomorrow is the day things will be set right. When that happens, maybe he will wake up to a world where you are still there. He just needs to hold on a little longer.
Hotel Majestic; Paris, France; Day of the Paris Peace Accords
Getting into the hotel was surprisingly easy. You thought security wouldāve been on a high alert, but it was oddly empty. Everyone is able to walk around freely without worry, yet you are still on edge.Ā
You donāt know why, but youāve had an uneasy feeling ever since the plane landed. You keep relaying it back to nerves, but you know you are lying to yourself. Something isnāt right, and the lack of security here is only making you feel worse.
āNot much security here for a big event like today,ā Logan says.
āItās still a hotel. Anyone can still stay here.ā Charles responds. āWe still need to be careful though. Stay alert.ā
You all make it to the staircase, and you see a map of the hotel. You point to the eastern wing, seeing how the third floor has a section for conference rooms. āTheir meeting is most likely happening somewhere here.ā
āOkay, letās get there quick. We are running out of time.ā Logan says urgently, and with that everyone is running up the stairs.
Logan is ahead of everyone, and you take notice how much his demeanor changed. He is ultra-focused, his mind only on one thing, and you canāt blame him. Youāre sure he is under an insane amount of pressure to ensure he pulls through given the future circumstances. However, youāve taken notice of how he keeps glancing at you with every chance he gets and it makes you wonder if there isnāt something else going on in that head of his.
Before you can ponder more on it, you hear yelling. You hear things moving harshly and what sounds like bodies hitting the floor. You all take a turn and see a flood of Vietnamese, Russian, and American military personnel running out of a room you can only assume is where your target is: Raven.
You all enter the room, and everything happens so quickly. Ravenās body hits the table, Charles is at her side, and Erik takes the tasers that latched to her body and gets them onto the man to the right of the table.
You hear a rapid beeping and to your left you see a man holding a device, red lines blaring as it goes off. You realize it is Trask, recognizing him from the papers.
You walk up, and before he can probably comprehend what is happening, you snatch the device from his hand. āIāll take thisā
You arenāt scared of him but you back away slowly, ensuring he cannot do anything behind your back. You hear another thump, and turn to see Logan against the wall breathing heavy with eyes screwed tight.
āLogan,ā you speak up, walking towards him, but with a few steps in you feel a rush of pain to your head.
You collapse onto the floor, hands holding your head as you start to shake. The pain is sharp and static, forming at the base of your neck and wrapping around your head suffocatingly. You can hear someone calling your name, but it sounds distant.Ā
āErikā¦ā you hear the fear in Ravenās voice, and with all you can muster you look to see Erik holding a gun. The same one Raven had to kill Trask, now pointed at her head.
Your brain isnāt comprehending anything Erik is saying, but his face is stone cold. Any hope that you were missing something was lost because you knew what he was going to do. It doesnāt take a clear head to see that.
You try to put your hand up, attempting to stop Erik in his tracks. The second your fingers touch his ankle, he kicks it off and places his foot on your wrist. You moan in pain, his weight pressing down enough to bruise.
āIām sorry, my dear. Iām afraid you are out of commission.ā Erik says calmly without taking a peep at you.
Everything happens in slow motion. The pressure is off your wrist, a gun shot sounds, and glass shatters. Your vision is blurry, your head feeling as if itāll pop off. The people in your vision blur together like paint bleeding in water. Voices are muddled and slow, but loud. You are in agony, and you just want everything to stop.
You start to hear more noise from the other side of the room, and you see Loganās blurred silhouette on the floor with his back against the wall. His hands clenched in his lap with claws out, breathing rapidly like someone would when they are having a panic attack. You grunt, pushing yourself up on your hands and knees with your jaw clenching tightly as the pain spikes. You crawl towards him with intent, and all you can think is Logan helped you when you were growing weak. He needs someone, and you will help him. Even if it fucking kills you.Ā
āLogan, please say something,ā you grit through your teeth, biting back against the strong pulse in your head.
He is unresponsive, and your own panic rises. You both canāt be down, not now. The fate of the world is happening at this very moment, and you arenāt going to let this new ailment weaken you. You grab his left hand, being careful not to freak him out, and quickly change to have a grip on his wrists. You position yourself so youāre hovering over him, knees on either side of his thighs. His eyes are closed shut, his head shaking. It seemed like he was having a nightmare while still being awake.
āLogan, can you hear me?ā You say with fast breaths, your head only getting worse, but still there is no response.
Fuck, I have to do something.Ā
You decide to think fast. Maybe, just maybe, you can stop his internal clock, keeping him in place until you can figure out how to get him out of this. You are a little afraid to do it in his current state, not knowing if he will react before everything settles in, but you have no choice. Not unless you want him to cave in on himself. You will stay in pain if it means helping him.
āI got you, Logan. I got you,ā you whisper with a tremor and put your hands to his temples, letting your power weasel its way through his mind. Your head clears instantaneously, the throbbing ebb dissipating, causing a sigh of relief to wash over you. However, that relief takes a turn into something startling.
You arenāt sure whatās happening. Logan wasnāt freezing like you were anticipating, but something else was occurring. Your power feels different, like it was searching for something. Whatever you were doing, it seemed to be working. His breathing had slowed down, his claws retracted, and his body became lax against the wall.Ā
The oddest part of all of this though is that you can see everything. Itās like your mind has become a VCR, and a VHS tape of his best memories has been inserted. Itās kind of nice to witness, seeing that even with all heās gone through, things got better. However, the next thing you see makes your heart stop.
Everything is subdued, but you can tell he is outside on the lawn of Charlesās mansion. Itās bright out, and you see trees. You see young children running around playing, some using their mutations to get the upper hand in their games. And then he shifts, his eyes going to his side to see a figure beside him. His hand reaches out to them and the image clears.Ā
Itās you. Holy shit, itās you!
You looked older. Not by much but maybe by a few years. The way youāre presented is more mature, but still has that edge. You honestly liked it, and liked the idea of who you would become.
His hand goes to your face, stroking the skin of your cheek and you watch as both of your hands go to the one lingering. You pressed a kiss to his palm, eyes closing and staying that way until you open them and pull your lips away.
āI didnāt know you had come home.ā You said, but it was playful.Ā
āGot back early this morning. Didnāt want to wake you.ā
āYou can always wake me up, Logan. I missed you so much.āĀ
āYou have no idea how much I missed you, sweetheart.ā
You watch his arms pull you in, but before you watch it happen your mind forces itself away. You feel tears dotting your face. And from the looks of it, Logan had tears on his face too.Ā
What was all that?
āIs he okay?ā You hear Charles coming from behind you, a slight edge to his voice.
āI-I got him,ā you stutter, shock still in your system. āYou and Hank stop Erik.ā
Thereās no response except for feet pacing away and out the door. You look around and see everyone is gone, most likely getting out during the chaos. You hear a grunt, and turn to see Loganās eyebrows scrunched up. His lips are quivering, and he is starting to shake again. When you see more teardrops form, you let go of him.
āShit, I overdid it,ā you say under your breath, even though you have zero clue on what you did.
His eyes shoot open, causing you to almost jump off of him if it werenāt for him pulling you back to him. His hands are on your face, thumbs pressing into your cheeks like he doesnāt know if you are really here or not. He says your name softly, a hint of disbelief in his tone.
āLogan, are you okay?ā You say, hands going to his wrists to steady yourself. In that instance he pulls you in, gripping you tightly in his hold and rocking back and forth with you.Ā
āOh God, youāre alive. Fuck I thought I lost you.ā You hear the pain in his voice, but it confuses you.
āLogan, Iām right here. Iām okay,ā you reassure, arms wrapping around his head. You try to comfort him, but he just grips you harder.Ā
āIām sorry,ā he says but itās muffled with his face buried in your neck. āIām so sorry I wasnāt there to protect you.ā
There is a dampness from his tears, along with the feel of his lips on your skin. His kisses are bruising, like he is trying to convince himself. You, on the other hand, are experiencing so much. You donāt know Logan, but it is very apparent he knows you. He says you two were close friends, but the more he continues to kiss your neck, the more you think there is something else he isnāt telling you. You can take a pretty good guess to what that is.
You are starting to think youāre going to be in this position forever, until you hear footsteps enter the room.Ā
āWe need to get ou-ā you can hear that itās Charles. āWhatās going on?ā
Your mouth opens to say something but shuts when nothing comes out. You donāt know what to say and you donāt want to say anything that may set Logan into another fit of unrest.Ā
āCharles, go pull the car around discreetly. Make sure you have Hank. We will be down shortly.āĀ
Once again, Charles leaves with no response. You turn your attention back to Logan, who is still weeping against you. You keep holding him tightly, thinking about how you are going to get him up to leave. As luck would have it, however, it is like something snaps back inside him because next thing you know you are being pushed away.
āWhat are you doing?āĀ
You quickly hop off of him, standing up in the process to provide some distance. You observe him, and see the shift back to how he was before he started to spiral. Still, there is something wild in his eyes, and you have yet to determine if thatās a good or a bad sign.
āOh thank God,ā you sigh in relief. āYou had me worried for a second.ā
He groans, rubbing his head as he gets his bearings. You should wait to ask; you really should. But you need to know what he saw, and more specifically if he saw what you had seen.
āWhat happened? What did you see?āĀ
āI saw someone that is going to bring me a lot of pain one day.ā Logan looks to the side, and you follow his gaze to where that military man once was.Ā
āI also sawā¦ā he starts, only to look around and notice you two are the only ones in there. āWhere is everyone? Whereās Raven?ā
āSheāsā¦ sheās gone.ā
āWhat?ā His head snaps to you, eyes blown wide.
You look down, a sigh leaving your lips at todayās turn of events. You feel the room shift, a tension building that feels foreign to you. You feel guilty, even though you know you shouldnāt, but you feel like youāve failed him. He is here to fix things, and now no one has a clue if what happened will make things better or worse. From how he is reacting, it can only be the latter.Ā
āWe need to leave.ā Logan mutters, already walking towards the exit. āLetās go.ā
He isnāt looking at you but waits for you to move. You nod, even though there is no recognition to come, and you walk ahead with him trailing behind you.
Yep, definitely the latter.
Xavierās School for Gifted Youngsters; Westchester, NY
The trip back felt like it had taken years off your lifespan, the stress that had surrounded the jet almost unbearable. Everyone had feelings of failure and guilt, as it took no telepath to see that, but what made things worse was how much Logan was distancing himself.
You had thought after what happened you would get to know more, but there was none of that, not even a word. Itās like you had burned him with the way he kept his distance. Even on the jet, a space with little room, he stayed far. You had purposely moved closer, and he made an excuse to get up only to sit at the opposite end of the jet. It upset you, and you hate that it did. You shouldnāt feel anything about him, yet after that stupid memory you saw, you do. How could you not?
You didnāt realize it at the time, but feeling how far he is from you makes your body ache in a way thatās unfamiliar. The way your body had felt against his, how solid he was, had you yearning. The way he had held you like you were the most precious thing he possessed had you wanting. If you are interpreting his memory correctly, then why is he holding you from such a distance?
Does he feel like it would be cheating? You know thatās you but that isnāt you now. You are different but how different? Different enough to warrant him to see you as a completely different person?
To be fair, you donāt know his past or even his future, but your heart is starting to want to go where he is. Itās like there is a red string connected between you two that stretches far and wide. You canāt help but think you harbor these feelings because no matter what, you were destined to be with him and he was destined for you. Nothing can cut that string, but it can stretch tightly and that string is losing its thread.
Currently, you are sitting at the top of the stairs, waiting for someone to come out of Charlesās room. Logan and Hank had taken him there, his legs having given out and his mind going off the rails as the effects of his medicine wear off. You chose to distance yourself so as to not overcrowd.
You could hear them talking, sometimes with voices raising and then going soft again. You couldnāt make out what they were discussing, only hearing certain words that have no meaning without context. It isnāt until you hear the door click open that you stand, seeing Hank leaving the room quickly followed by Logan.Ā
āIs he okay?ā You ask, watching Hank come towards you fast.
āHeās going to try and find Raven using Cerebro.ā He says walking fast past you down the stairs. āGetting his wheelchair!ā
Logan follows him, not glancing at you or saying a word causing you to frown. You are hot on his heels, having more questions desperate for answers.
āLogan, is he going to be alright?āĀ
āYep, just fine. Hank and I will be right beside him.ā Logan says curtly, walking towards Charlesās old office.
āWhat about me?ā You ask, but it falls on deaf ears as he starts to look for something.
āLogan.ā You were starting to get frustrated. What the fuck is his problem?
He finally finds what heās looking for, and you see him slam a phone book onto the desk. He is flipping through it just a touch too aggressive, pages cringing as he flips the pages. He then stops and puts his finger down on a number before picking up the phone and clocking in the digits.
āSeriously, Logan. Who could you possibly be calling?ā You ask him, only to get fucking pissed at his next few words.
āI need a cab for 1407 Graymalkin Lane-ā
āWhat the hell are you doing?!ā You storm towards him, getting more irritated by the second.
āCalling you a taxi. You are going home.ā Logan growls out, about to continue speaking before you snatch the phone from him and slam it back down.Ā
āLike hell I am!ā You yell. āJust as I told you a couple days ago, I am not going anywhere. You all need me.āĀ
He slams his hands down against the table, making you jump back. āListen here, princess. I donāt care how much you think we need you because it doesnāt fucking matter. We need to focus. I need to focus. I cannot do that with you here, so you are going to take a cab back to New York City. Do you understand?ā
The daggers in his eyes are sharp, trying to make you give in to his demands. You know better and you can see right through him. āIs this about what happened in Paris?ā
He scoffs, turning away from you to walk away. āIt was nothing you need to worry about. Just saw someone that is going to make my life hell. I am fine.ā
āThat isnāt what I am talking about. When I was trying to calm you down, I saw something.ā You say, and it stops him in his tracks.
āWhat do you mean you saw something?ā He turns, facing you. āWhat could you have possibly seen?āĀ
āI was trying to stop your panic attack by stopping the conception of time in your brain, but I did something else. Something I didnāt know I could do.ā You explain, and his face softens from anger to confusion.
āI think I somehow moved your consciousness forward in time,ā you continued. āI was able to see where I was moving it. It was how I was able to get you to settle down.ā
He is in front of you instantly, hands on your shoulders in a tight grip. āWhat did you see?ā
āI saw myself through your eyes.ā You breathed out. āWe were out on the lawn behind the mansion.ā
āWhat else did you see?ā Logan shakes you a little, causing you to squeak. He is starting to scare you a little bit; the way he is behaving is very irrational.
āThat was all I saw, I swear.ā You say honestly.Ā
Logan sighs deeply, tilting his head back with eyes closed. He lets go of you, taking steps back until heās against the wall. You are growing worried with how he is acting. You wish he would just tell you everything. Tell you what you two really were. Tell you what is running through his head. Tell you what is scaring him so badly. Seeing him so vulnerable has shaken you, but you canāt back down.
āWe werenāt just friends,ā you whisper. āWe were far more, werenāt we?ā
Loganās breath hitches, and his mouth opens to speak but no words come.Ā
āIt explains everything. The way youāve been acting since we met. I can see the longing in your eyes. I can see it in the way you look after me. What I donāt understand is why you didnāt tell me.ā
āIt doesnāt matter.ā Logan laughs but it isn't playful. It sounds like a laugh that comes to cover the hurt and is full of self-pity.
āIt matters to me!ā You lament. āI want to know why.ā
āListen,ā Logans says, his tone becoming solemn. āWhatever I say or do here affects the future as we know it. Me even being in the same vicinity as you these last few days has made everything extremely difficult for me. If say or do one thing wrong, thatās it. The future I have with you ceases to exist and you cease to exist.ā
āWhat do you mean I cease to exist?ā You ask, taken aback by his confession.
Loganās face pales, quickly turning to go back up the stairs. āFuck, Iāve said to much.ā
Your hand grabs his, yanking him back enough to keep him still. āLogan, what do you mean I cease to exist?ā
Both of your emotions are running high, bubbling to the point of overflow; the edge you both were teetering on, about to fall over. You shouldnāt push it, but rationality is no longer home; only frustration.
āLogan, I swear to God if you donāt tell me what the fuck it is you mean I-ā
āYou die in the future! Is that what you want to hear?ā Logan shouts, and everything goes quiet.
You are stunned. āWhat?ā
āYou die during the first few Sentinel attacks.ā Logan rips his hand away like heās having an adverse reaction.
āSo,ā you start, not knowing where you want to go with this question. āSo youāre afraid Iām sealing my fate by being here?ā
āIām afraid I once again wonāt be able to save you.ā Logan says with a pained expression.Ā
āYou donāt need to worry about me. If something happens, I can just shift time back and we can prevent it.ā
āGod, you are still so stubborn,ā he heaves. He is now face level with you on the steps, and he takes your face in his hands.Ā
āYou donāt understand how hard it is for me to stay away. The first time I saw you at the nightclub, all I wanted to do was pull you into me. It is taking everything in me not to hold you like I want to. To kiss you, to love you. But the more I let you in, the more I am close to giving in. I will not divulge my desires at the risk of everyone that is counting on me, especially you.ā
You can see his torment, and all you want is to comfort him. You want to kiss him so bad. You want to pull him by his shirt and never let him go. You understand his love for you, but you want him to understand that you would go to end with him, no matter what.Ā
Your hands go to his wrists, keeping his hands in place. āHave you considered that you coming back here and me being here with you was meant to happen? What if me being here helping you all saves me? What if it extends our lifetime together?ā
He doesnāt say anything, but the way he is looking at you makes you weep. His lip quivers, his eyes start to shine, and his jaw is clenching hard enough to break teeth. Your hands slither up his arms to his shoulders. You feel magnetized, your face inching closer to his to see if he will have a change of heart. You are close enough to feel his breath shutter against your lips, and your heart is beating so fast you are sure he can hear it. You feel slight contact, a ghost of a kiss before full impact, but it never comes.
āLogan!ā Charles yells from upstairs. āWe are getting ready to go.ā
Logan is quick to pull away, sending a wave of hurt towards you. He breathes out a stuttered breath before yelling a response and heading upstairs, but before he goes up he turns his head towards you. āThere is money on Charles's desk. Please leave while you have the chance.ā
He goes upstairs not looking back and you watch as he disappears from your view. You stand there for a while, deep in thought as you weigh your options, but you knew what you were going to do. Even though Logan was afraid, and rightfully so, you had a gut feeling everything would turn itself around.
So, with heavy steps, you walk up the stairs and down the hall, picking the second to last room on the right. It is barren aside from a bed and a dresser, and seeing the bed made you realize how exhausted the day's events have made you. You shut the door, and flop onto the bed, letting sleep take over and dreams manifest.
Xavierās School for Gifted Youngsters; Westchester, NY; Four Hours Later
20 Text Messages.
10 Missed Calls.
3 Voice Messages.
Voice Message 1: Hey baby, just calling you to tell you goodnight. Donāt worry about waking me when you get home. I wanna see you as soon as you get in. Get back safely. I love you.
Voice Message 2: Logan, something is wrong. There are a bunch aircrafts above the mansion. Not sure what is happening. Myself and the others are getting the kids together. Iād rather be safe than sorry. Please be cautious when you get home. I love you.
Voice Message 3: Logan. Logan! Whatever you do, please do not come to the mansion! Itās under attack! Those Sentinels are here and- oh God Logan itās a slaughter. Please do not come! Iāll find you once Iām safe. I love you!
Logan is running like hell to the mansion, and he can see them. They swarm the building like flies, crawling along the brick. There are fires, giant gaping holes in the wall, and bodiesā¦ so many bodies.
He gets in, staying close to the wall as he listens. He can hear the Sentinel bodies grind and creak as they move, hunting down any mutant that hasnāt been vanquished. He sniffs deeply, trying to find you in the building. He hopes you made it out already, but that hope is lost when he gets a strong whiff of you and blood.
So much blood.
He enters the foyer, and dead center he sees your body, a hole pierced into your stomach. He sees your mouth open, trying to breath but your chest stammers as it goes down.Ā
No. No, no, no!
He is at your side, pulling you into his arms. He cradles your head, his hand going to the hand holding your wound. Your eyes are slitted, a dazed look looking right back at him. Itās haunting how dull you are starting to look, and every second adds to his panic.
āBaby, Iām here. Iām here.ā
Your free hand, the one not stained in your own blood, clutches onto his shirt. You pulled on it so lightly, strength slowly fading away.Ā
āI told you not to come,ā you whimpered. āItās not safe here.ā
āI wasnāt about to leave you here to deal with this alone. We gotta get you out of here.ā
āNo, you do.āĀ
āDonāt say that,ā he said sternly. āYou are coming with me.ā
He lets go to take his belt and shirt off. Balling up the shirt, he moves your hand to put the fabric against your stomach.Ā
āFuck!ā You screamed.
āIām so sorry, baby. Bear with me, please.ā
He is crying, holding his sobs in as tears break over the dam. He takes his belt and wraps it around your torso, keeping the pressure so more blood doesnāt come out. There is already so much around you.Ā
āIām gonna lift you up, okay?āĀ
He wraps your arms around his neck, getting a grip under your legs and your back before lifting you up.Ā
āI got you. I got you.ā
He starts walking back from where he came, but he wasnāt so lucky this time. He sees them on the ground, making their way up from where he entered. He turns quickly, thinking the only other way out is through the tunnels.
He hits the secret door, and just as it opens he hears one coming their way. He shoves you both through, getting it shut before he starts making his way down. He is making multiple turns, his mind spinning in a haze as he goes to find the exit. He feels your breathing slow, and for the first time in a long time he is scared. You are everything. Without you, he is nothing.
He makes one final turn, the exit at the end, but he halts in his spot. All he sees is carnage. There is blood on the walls, bodies of students, and marks from where their gifts were used. The exit door had been beaten down, the walls cracked and gone along with it.Ā
āGood Godā¦ā He shouldnāt have come down here.
He turns to go back, but from the shadows comes one of them. It blends in with the concrete, and makes itself known once itās in reach. Its arm shifts into something sharp, and once formed it draws down to where he stands, but just as quickly he dodges with you in his arms.
āWeāre not dying today, bub.ā
He starts to run like hell towards the exit, only to see another one pop up at the opening. He takes a sharp turn, getting the runaround to make it back to the entrance. Itās a maze of turns, feeling like itāll take an eternity to get to safety, but with one final turn he has it.
And then he doesnāt.
Rubble had fallen from the flooring above and made its way down creating a massive blockage. Itās a fucking dead end.
The two Sentinels approach, both opening their mouths to burn you two alive. He crouches down with his back facing them, preparing to take anything they give him. He will suffer. Good God, he will suffer. But if he can fake them out enough to leave, you will be safe. Thatās all that matters.
But the pain never comes.Ā
āLogan.ā
He looks down to see you holding your arms out, and his eyes widen when he realizes you are using your powers. He turns to see the Sentinels, but they are still moving. Just incredibly slow.
āLogan, you need to leave.ā
He turns back to you, and sees your body shaking. The work he had put into keeping the blood from spilling was fatal. You were hemorrhaging.Ā
āIām not leaving you here. I wonāt do it.ā
You let out a pitiful cry, your tears streaming down your cheeks. He can see his too as they mix with yours.
āThere is no saving me. Let me save you, please.ā
āBaby, I-ā
āDo not let me die in vain, Logan. They need you.ā
āBut I need you!ā
āI know, and Iām sorry I canāt give you what you need. Itās selfish, I know.ā
āYouāre damn right it is.ā
āBut please, let me be selfish. Let me save you.ā
He can start to feel the heat, the Sentinels mouths setting wide enough to set this tunnel ablaze. Everything is telling him to stay, but the way you are looking at him breaks him and it makes him cave.
He can never say no to you.
āGo. Find the others. Make sure they are safe. God, please make sure they are safe.ā
āI love you, sweetheart,ā Logan chokes, holding you just a little tighter. āIām so sorry.ā
āI am too.ā
He kisses you. Itās soft yet full of sorrow. Itās a kiss of death, he knows it.Ā
āIāll see you in the next life.ā
You smiled at that. Itāll be the last smile he sees from you. āGo quickly. I canāt hold on much longer, Logan.ā
He lets go, gently setting you down, before he runs past the Sentinels and makes his way back to the exit. The second he was out of sight, he heard it. The roar of the flames, the mechanical sounds from their armor, and your screams.
All he can hear is your screaming.
Your screams.
You are fucking screaming.
Logan shoots up from the bed, a yell cutting off from his lips as he enters consciousness. He is breathing rapidly, swallowing nonexistent spit as he works to pull himself together. His claws were all the way out, a common side effect of his trauma response. He feels how cool the air is in the room due to the sweat that coated his body.Ā
He didnāt think he could dream in this current state. He hasnāt had that dream in a while, even though he wishes it was simply that. He used to have it so often, a constant reminder that he failed you and let you suffer just so he could get away. Having to relive the worst day of his life over and over is his own form of hell.
He hears a knock at the door, startling him from his state of being.Ā
āLogan?āĀ
He freezes up, knowing that voice from anywhere. He really doesnāt want you in here, not with him like this. Not with him feeling so exposed.Ā
āIām fine!ā He calls out, hoping you would take the hint, but he knows better.
He watches the door open and you appear. You are still in your beat up clothes, leather jacket and dirty shoes forgotten. Nothing has changed, but you look even more beautiful than you have since heās gotten here. Maybe itās because his senses are heightened. Maybe itās the way the floodlights from outside shine on you in contrast with the dark room. Simply, maybe it is just you.
āI thought I told you to leave.ā He says, trying to sound annoyed, but failing miserably.
āYeah, and I told you I wasnāt going to let grown men tell me what to do.ā You responded, shutting the door behind you.Ā
āHmph,ā he groused, looking down at his hands as his claws sink back into his flesh.
He hears you get closer, feet pattering against the wooden floors. āI could hear you in your sleep. I wanted to make sure you were okay.ā
āYeah, Iām okay.ā But am I really? āJust a nightmare.ā
He looks out the window, the night in full effect. The bed dips, and he looks to see you sitting down at the end. He sees it in your face that you donāt believe him, which isnāt surprising. Youāve always been able to read him no matter the circumstances.Ā
āDid you want to talk about it?ā
āNo,ā he says quickly. He doesnāt want to relive it twice in one night.
āOkay, okay,ā you say calmly. āTell me what I can do for you.ā
Please stay, so I know this is real.Ā
Thatās what he wants to say, but he feels like he will choke. His silence is deafening, so much so he sees your face twist in reaction.Ā
āIf you want to be alone, I understand.ā You got up from the bed. āGoodnight, Logan.ā
There was a time when he didnāt need to be strong or to carry the weight of others. With you as his anchor, he could be exposed. He has had to be strong for so long in recent years, but with you right here in front of him, he feels himself caving. So many emotions are rushing to his head, a battle between the Devil and God raging. He knows itās wrong to interfere with the past, especially when there are consequences, but after tonight his sanity is slipping. Before he knows it, his hand grabs your arm to keep you from taking another step.
āStay,ā he whispers, a hint of a crack that is only noticed by him. āPlease.ā
āOkay,ā you say with ease. āWhere do you want me?ā
The angel on his shoulder is telling him to not give in, yet the little, conniving demon on the other side is telling him what he wants to hear. He wants you close; needs you close.
āWill you let me hold you?āĀ
He thought there may be some hesitation, but there is none. You walk back over to the bed, and he lays back as you climb onto it. His arm is out to invite you in, and you situate yourself to him. Your left arm is cradled into your chest and your right curls so your hand is where his heart is. Your head settles where his right arm and shoulder connect.
āIs this okay?āĀ
Itās more than okay. āYes, thank you.ā
You both lay there for a while, and he lets his senses completely take over. The first thing he senses is your smell. There is something so sugary sweet about your scent. He equates it closely to something heād smell in a candy shop with housemade confections. Itās intoxicating, and makes him hungry.Ā
You fit into his arms just right. The skin from your cheek laying on his exposed shoulder brings a comfort he hasnāt had in so long. It made him realize how touch-starved heās been. He hasnāt touched another woman since your passing, and the thought of doing so makes his stomach turn. He only wants to feel you against him, in every sense of the word.Ā
The most shocking thing for him is to hear how calm you sound. Your breathing is deep and slow. Your heartbeat is sounding its soothing rhythm under your ribcage. Itās the opposite of how his heart was reacting; hard and fast pumps of blood rushing. He feels your hand rubbing circles over his heart, and he wonders if you can tell how much you are affecting him.Ā
āTell me something about me from the future.ā
Logan looks down at you, and you look so peaceful as you lay with him. Does he do this to you?
āWhat do you want to know?āĀ
āAnything. Something good.ā
There are so many good things about you. Itās hard to divulge into just one thing, but even then he knows where to start.
āYou teach music at the school.ā
You perked your head up at this. āI teach?ā
āMhmm,ā he hums, smiling to himself. āYou do a lot of the extracurricular activities for the younger ones, but music is one you do a lot of. Youāre really good with kids.ā
You move your body, hands on top of one another on his chest. Your head lays on them, looking at him with a smile that makes his heart beat faster.Ā
āSounds like Iāve become a lot more patient in the future.ā
āTrust me,ā Logan chuckles. āYou are still quite stubborn, but you are different with them.ā
Logan loved seeing you with the kids. He remembers how nervous you were to teach the younger students, but he knew you would do well. Seeing how you interacted with them during class, how you encouraged them and gave them the will to work hard. So many of the kids came from families who despised who they were. You became a mother-figure to a lot of them.
He thinks about the time he woke up to kids laughing and looked out the window to see you running around with them. You were carrying on with them, laughing with them, looking at them with care and love. It was the moment he realized he would love to start a family with you. Watch you grow with his child, see you love them like you love the kids at school. It makes his heart twist.
āDid they like me?ā
āOh, sweetheart. They loved you.ā Loved. God, you were so loved by them.
āCan I ask something?ā You ask.
āAnything.ā He can feel himself getting lost in you, his hand subconsciously caressing your hair.Ā
āWhat I did in Paris,ā you start. āYou seemed genuinely confused when I explained what I did earlier. Was that something I couldnāt do in the future?ā
When you told him you brought his memories to the forefront of his mind, shifting time in his brain, he was shocked. Your mutation is special, and the control you had over it is simply astounding. He isnāt surprised that your powers can do more than what was discovered originally, but it now begged the question: what triggered it and why now?
āNo,ā Logan says with the shake of his head. āWhat do you think caused it?ā
āLogan, I think you did.ā He hears you hesitate.
āWhat do you mean?ā
He watches as you sit up, crossing your legs. Your hands grab his right hand, thumbs pushing into his skin right where his mutated bones come out. It is strange how different you are acting in comparison to the last few days. You are acting like the you he gets to know later, the edge in your attitude completely gone. Maybe this is who you are or maybeā¦ you are only this way with him.
āSo, the day we met, earlier that day, I saw you come out of the Algonquin.ā
He sits up at this, heart picking up more. āYou were there?ā
āI pulled over because I started to get a terrible migraine. It was so bad I thought I was having a stroke or something, but then it stopped like it was never there. Next thing I know, I see you and I can't look away. I felt like I knew you and I didnāt know why.ā
āHas it happened more than once? The migraines?ā Logan is pulled into your direction, back hunching slightly to get closer even when he doesnāt realize it.
āIt happened again at Maxās when you introduced yourself.ā
His eyes widen, the pieces coming together. āThatās why you looked like you were in pain.āĀ
āI chalked it up to having drank too much,ā you huffed out a laugh. āIt didnāt make sense at the time, but after Paris I canāt shake the feeling.ā
āSo what are you saying? That I opened your mind?āĀ
āIf I didnāt have access to this part of my mutation from the future you are from, what if that means this was all meant to happen?ā You brought his hand to your chest where your heart lies and he can feel directly where your heart beats.
Where it beats for him.
āI wasnāt even the one meant to come here,ā Logan says in denial. āIt was supposed to be Charles.ā
āBut what if it wasnāt?ā You grip his hand harder, pushing it further against you. āWhat if you were meant to find me to make things right? To save everyone. To save us. Maybe this is fate trying to tell you something.ā
He is becoming weak. Your words are so honest and it is taking nothing to believe you. Maybe you are right, maybe you are wrong. You havenāt seen the bloodbath the future becomes, but maybe you donāt need to have seen to know. Your words, your reasoning; both make his resolve crack and there isnāt much left. Having you here in front of him, being so reassuring and confident, he isnāt going to last.Ā
āWhat are you thinking right now, Logan?ā You ask gently, and if he is seeing things correctly, he sees how much you want him to give in. And thatās all he needs.
āIām thinking about how much I want to kiss you right now.ā
His hand on your chest is pulled lower, down to your left breast where you curl your fingers over his to squeeze the flesh. āThen do it.ā
To say the dam has broken would be an understatement. The dam has vaporized, mass flooding reaching the heavens. Those three words were enough for him to snatch you into his arms, pull you on top of him, and get his lips onto yours. He has your thighs on either side of his own, holding you so close that your crotch is pressed tightly against his. Your hands are holding onto his shoulders with nails digging into his skin, and fuck he loves it.
His hands are all over you; going from your hips to your ass to the small of your back to your head. He wants to touch every part of you and memorize every inch of your skin. His fingers bundle up the bottom of your top, pushing it up with his fingertips to let his palms glide along your waist. You gasped against his lips, giving him the opportunity to let his tongue fondle yours.Ā
He unclasps your bra as his hands reach the middle of your back, giving him the chance to take both items of clothing off your body. He pulls away from you, back leaning against the headboard as he takes you in. Your body is just as he remembered it, and he could weep at how stunning you are.
āDo I look okay?ā There is a hint of uncertainty in your voice, and it sends his hands to gently bring your face down to him.
āYou are the most beautiful woman I have ever laid my eyes on.ā His eyes bore into yours as he tells you, needing you to know how much he means it.Ā
Before he can say anything else, your lips are back on his. He lets you take the lead, your tongue leading him in a dance. It gives him the opportunity to focus his hands on your breasts. You whimper against his mouth and he feels you push your chest into his palms as he massages them, which causes a little smirk to form at the corner of his mouth. You had always loved when he played with them as it turned you on like nothing else.Ā
āGood to know your tits have always been so sensitive,ā he murmurs against your lips, thumb and pointer fingers going to pinch the puckered buds.
A high-pitched moan is pulled from you, your hips involuntary grinding against him in response. Your lips let go of his, and they end up going to his cheek. āI guess you know how to get me going, donāt you?ā
āOh baby, I know your body like the back of my hand,ā he hums with a rumble. He can play your body like an instrument, the song being your sweet noises. He is going to show you just how well he makes you sing.
He is quick to flip you over, removing his white wife pleaser in the process before his hands go to your jeans. He yanks them down with your panties and you help kick them off before he tosses them aside. He goes to take his own off, stripping everything away until he is as naked as you are.Ā
He crawls up to you, moving your thighs over his hips. His hands reach under your back and he pulls you into his lap. Your legs wrapped around him, and he groans as your wet cunt sits against his cock. His left arm stays wrapped around you, and his right hand holds the back of your head with fingers at the roots of your hair. Your hips start grinding up onto his erection, mewls so sweet that he canāt help but consume them.
He pulls your head to the side by your hair gently, tugging just enough to get a reaction from you. Your eyes flutter, and he hums as he lets his lips ghost over your ear.Ā
āI have every little spot of yours memorized,ā he kisses behind your ear, his tongue peeking out for a little lick before kissing in the same spot. āEven if you think you know what they are, just know I know all of them.ā
āFuck, Logan,ā you say with a shiver, making your body press further into the heat he is projecting.Ā
āMmm thatās right.ā His lips go down to the underside of your jaw where your pulse is, kissing it gingerly to prepare you for his next act. āKeep that up.ā
He bites down slowly on the crevice, letting his teeth sink in far enough to leave his mark. Your hands are on his head, cooing softly at the distinct pressure. He releases, licking the indents he left in your skin to soothe the ache.Ā
āYou sound so pretty, baby,ā he murmurs. āLet me see if you know this one.ā
His mouth trails down, sucking marks into your skin until he gets down to your sternum. His back hunches down, leaning you back to get the angle just right. He sets his tongue to work, letting the tip trail a stripe up until he reaches the notch between your collarbones. A little gasp followed by a hushed curse falls from your lips. The sensation causes you to squirm in his lap and it makes his dick twitch against your folds. Logan isnāt a patient man in most regards, but he could spend an eternity exploring your body. Your reactions fuel him and they send blood right down to his cock.Ā
āDidnāt know about that spot, did you?āĀ
āNo, ah!ā Logan pulls another gasp from you as he nibbles around the edges. āGetting me addicted to you early, arenāt you?ā
āThatās right, angel.ā Logan canāt help himself, thrusting his hips up a little to let his length rub into your pussy; so wet and so good. āIāll have you yearning for me for decades to come.ā
As he proceeds the motion of his hips, tightening his hold on you, he allows his right hand to come up to your left breast. With his tongue and cock being a distraction, he pulls at your taut nipple at the same time his teeth bite down on your collarbone. You cry out his name, his hair being fisted and pulled. He canāt help the wanton moan that spills out, riling him up to no end.Ā
Your breast feels so at home in his hand, but looking at how pretty your nipples look, flushed from his treatment, he gets a craving. His tongue makes a path down, making its way to the left and up until it slithers to your erected bud. His mouth latches, encircling the peak as he sucks earnestly. He continues rutting into you, feeling his and your fluids coating his appendage.Ā
Logan feels himself becoming drunk. With you in his arms reciprocating his intentions, itās like he is weightless. Something deep in his scarred heart is healing. Years of trauma from seeing and experiencing the unthinkable transform into the better things in life. He thinks of the future he could have with you. A future where you take his last name. A future where you two live in a little home decorated however you choose. A future with your belly big with his kid, where he can kiss your stomach every morning and every night. A future where you and him raise a child. He wants that. He wants that so bad.Ā
In his drunken haze, he feels one of your hands leave his head. Your fingertips send his nerves alight as they trail down his arm. You are tracing the veins that are bulging out, and he grunts as they go over to his chest. He has switched to your other breast, and as he starts, he feels your palm against his cock. You are pushing it more into your cunt, thumb running over his fat tip as you rub it.Ā
āFuck,ā he curses with a pop. āYou are such a greedy girl.ā
āWhat can I say?ā You jest. āI know what I want.ā
āAnd what would that be, sugar?ā He thrusts against you, cockhead rubbing up and down your clit.Ā
You smiled at him, and your other hand goes from his head to his jaw. Fingers slightly scratching his beard with your thumb on his bottom lip, you lean back into him with knees shifting. They are on either side of him now and his tip is being lined up against your hole. Your eyes seek out his, and he canāt look away as he admires you. You are beautiful, an angel sent down for him. Every version of you is perfect, and for every version of you he will sacrifice everything.
āI want you to make love to me,ā you say with a shuttered breath. āShow me how you love me. Show me what I have to look forward to.ā
Loganās tip is enveloped by your heat by the time you finish, and your words were the full confirmation he needed to seat you fully onto his shaft.Ā
Itās like gasping for air with how intense his reunion with you feels. You fit perfectly around him. Itās almost too good to be true. Part of him is wondering if he is still dreaming, but with how warm and snug you are, it has to be real. This has to be happening.
You lift your hips until all thatās connected is the head before dropping back down. His cock glides right in and he grunts as you work yourself on him. He guides your movements with his hands, both on your plush ass and giving a squeeze with every bounce. Your arms have since wrapped around his neck, head hiding in his neck. Your hot breath fans across his skin, your teeth nipping at him every time he fills you up.Ā
He loves how you are taking what you need, letting you keep the pace to get used to his size. Normally during an intimacy session, he would prepare you more thoroughly. Heād pleasure you with his mouth, letting his spit coated tongue lubricate your pretty pussy. Heād finger you open, getting you nice and relaxed for his heavy cock. He would add another when your little noises got rowdier, a tell-tale sign that you needed more. He did everything to ensure you were ready for him, the enjoyment of your pleasure and taste a perk in the endeavor. With how you are riding him, however, it feels like you are preparing him. Taking it slow, letting him savor you, letting him know that this is real and you are his.Ā
āYou feel incredible, Lo,ā you whimper into his neck. He just about mimics you after hearing you call him by that little nickname.
āI can say the same to you, pretty girl.ā He lifts your head by your hair, putting your forehead to his as he rocks up into you. āTaking my cock so well. You were made for me. Aināt that right?ā
āMhmm,ā you hum. āIāll always be yours. In every lifetime, I am yours and you are mine.ā
He chokes out a laugh, completely overwhelmed with emotion. He kisses your swollen lips with ease, his tongue flicking out to savor your taste. Every moan that comes out is captured by his mouth, swallowing the sweet sounds desperately. He notices your hips start to slow, and your whining gets more consistent. He knew you were tiring, but that was okay. He has enough energy and greed to take over. You make him greedy, and he needs more.
āDid you want me to take over, baby?ā
āPlease,ā you mumble against his lips. āTake me.ā
He doesnāt need to be told twice. He shifts himself, keeping you two connected as he gets you onto your back. He situates you so your legs are wrapped around his torso, legs pushed down so your thighs are almost to your chest. The angle he has you in gives him the chance to push in just a little more, his tip putting pressure onto your cervix.Ā
āOh God, you are so deep,ā you mewl, clenching down on his cock causing him to groan at the grip.
āThatās right, baby. Damn you look so beautiful like this.āĀ
āYeah? I look beautiful with your big cock in my pretty pussy?ā
āFuck, you got a mouth on you.ā Logan thrusts shallowly in response, a whine ripping out from your throat. āBut to answer your question, you look beautiful no matter what.ā
He starts thrusting long, deep strokes into you. He lets one hand stick to your hip, and the other has a gentle grip on your jaw to keep your head in place. His thumb traces your bottom lip, and in an instant your tongue latches to it. It draws it in, getting it so your lips close around it and suck on it as your tongue lathers it. Your eyes shut, and you hum happily like you are savoring the musk from his skin. It enraptured him, making him pick up the pace, hips starting to slam against you.Ā
Heās on the cusp of his release. He doesnāt want this end, not by a long shot. But tonight will become tomorrow. A new day will start where the stresses of his mission will come to light. All he can do is savor this last little bit of happiness and hope sometime soon he will wake up with you by his side.
āLo, Iām close,ā you grunt out.
He takes his soaked thumb, bringing it down to your bundle of nerves. āIāll get you there, baby. Cum whenever you are ready.ā
He swirls your clit at an easy pace, a contrast to how he is slamming into you. He is battering into your pussy, hitting that spot he knows all too well. Your moans grow louder, more accustomed to his hard hitting movements. The sounds of wet slapping with moaning and grunting fill the room, and with the slightest bit of added pressure to your clit he gets you there; right where he wants you.
Your back is arching off the bed, nails finding purchase on his thighs. Your moans are breathless, the wind knocked out as he continues the fast pace of his hips. He looks down where the two of you are connected, watching the white fluid flow down between your ass and drip onto the bed. He can smell it and something snaps in his brain where he wants more.Ā
He can tell you are coming down from your high, but he isnāt having any of that. His length stills, fully seated in you, and starts rutting the tip against your g-spot.Ā
āFuck, itās too much,ā you cry out. āLogan, please!ā
āI got you, pretty girl. Just need you to cum on my cock one more time.āĀ
You nod, and he pushes his hips harder, and it isnāt long before you are wailing with another release. This sets him off again, and he pulls almost fully out before pistoning his cock in and out rapidly as he prolongs your orgasm. You are wailing his name, and he can see tears falling down the sides of your eyes from how good he was making you feel. He is on top of a hill about to roll down, and before he releases, he pulls out.Ā
Your legs try to shut, but his thighs prevent it. He takes two fingers and sticks them into your cunt to continue riding your release out. His other hand fists his cock over your stomach, and with a growl he is cumming in ropes. White paints your tummy until itās pooling down into your belly button, drenching the skin and making it sheer. He is breathing heavy, orgasmic bliss fading into something more peaceful. He sees you are on the same boat, chest going up and down. It isnāt until he hears a sob crash out from your lips and more tears forming that he snaps out of his daze.
āBaby, whatās wrong?ā He is urgent as he gets off the bed, getting closer to you from the side of the bed. His hands are immediately on your face, thumbs wiping away the new droplets trailing down.Ā
āIām sorry,ā you choke, staggered breaths coming from you with a mixture of sobs in between. āIām okay. It was just a lot.ā
āIām so sorry, sweetheart. I got carried away.ā He goes to kiss the apples of your cheeks where the tears have stained, before standing up fully. āLet me get you cleaned, okay?ā
He turns to go get a towel from the bathroom when he feels your hand wrap around his wrist, stopping him completely.Ā
āIt was a lot, but in a good way.ā
He goes to kneel on the ground beside the bed, hands going to yours to kiss your knuckles. āAre you sure you are okay? I wouldnāt dream of hurting you,ā he murmurs into your skin.Ā
āLogan, I have never experienced pleasure like that before,ā you say hiccuping, causing a laugh to bubble out after. āI never thought I could experience something like that with someone ever.ā
It dawns on him that this is technically your first time with him, meaning once the future sets to the right course, this moment will become the first time he made love to you. His mind goes back to the very first time, both coming back from a night out with a need so deep that it was said and done too quickly. This time, he got to cherish you. He got to make your first time with him feel special and adored. It is surreal, and it is everything.Ā
āWhy are you crying?ā He hears you whisper, a hand escaping his grip to wipe away his own tears.
He didnāt even realize it, but he didnāt care. He didnāt hide it. He lets you wipe them away, mirroring how he tended to yours. āIām happy. Happier than I have been in a long time.ā
He brings his head down to kiss your lips, a light peck that leads to a few more on your face. A giggle leaves your lips, and he swears his face grew more wet.Ā
He looks to see the cum starting to dry on your skin, and he places one more kiss before standing up. āLet me get you cleaned up, and we can rest for a while.ā
He rushes to the bathroom, steps heavy, and emerges with a warm, wet towel. He sits on the edge of the bed, taking the fabric to your heat to clean the fluids lingering. He is gentle, not wanting to rub the towel anywhere thatās still sensitive to the touch. He kisses your knees and the inside of your thighs, the fabric now on your tummy as he wipes you clean. Your skin is cleared of any fluids, and with one last kiss to your flesh he pulls away.Ā
He tosses the towel into the sink before going to the other side of the bed, pulling the sheet and comforter back to get under. He reaches over to you, pulling you into him as he adjusts the blanket from under you. He settles with you on his chest, just like you were earlier, with the bedding now over your forms. You snuggle up to him, your fingers twirling around the hair on his chest. His fingers brush through your hair, admiring the afterglow you are giving, and thinking about how lucky he is right now.
You are his baby. His life. His soul. He was miserable without you, but he didnāt realize how bad off he was until now. Having you back in his arms, even for a moment, made his soul come to life. It had been rendered useless when it was severed, and now his sense of purpose is strong. The love he is feeling in this room wraps around him snuggly, and he doesnāt want to leave its embrace.Ā
Your left hand pokes out from in between your bodies, and his free hand goes to twiddle with the fingers. He thinks about how big his hands are compared to yours. His whole fist could cover the entirety of your hand, yet your hands are on the rougher side like his. There are some calluses from what he assumes is drumming. They form along the top of your palm where your fingers connect. He stops where your ring finger lies, and he subconsciously sighs.
He remembers how Storm had helped him find a ring for you. You had said how you would love anything he chose because it was from him. However, he wanted it to be a ring that made a statement for his love. He wanted a ring where every time you looked at it, you would know how much he adored you.Ā
He thinks about how back in the future, it is still around his neck like a virtue. It makes him wonder if in the near distant future, when things become sane and good, if he will still have that ring. Will he, who may become a different man after he returns, have the guts to propose to you? He regrets so much, but that is something he regrets greatly. Not proposing before the world fell apart. Not proposing to let you know that he is ready to take the next step, and to let you know he is committed to you even past the point of death. Death do us part doesnāt apply to you or him.Ā
āWhatās on your mind?ā
He looks down to see you looking up at him, a smile forming on his lips as he takes you in. āJust thinking about how I could go for a cigar right now.ā
You smacked his chest, making him grunt out a chuckle. āIām guessing thatās a common occurrence after these kinds of things.ā
āThat or we go for round two,ā he smirks, laughing as you smack his chest again.
āHorndog,ā you mumble into his side.Ā
āA horndog for you, baby.ā He goes to kiss you again but then he hears rapid knocking on their door.
āAre you two decent?ā Hank asks loudly from behind the door. āThis is urgent!ā
āJust come in, Hank.ā Logan pulls the covers further up on you, a slight possessiveness taking over as Hank comes in. Your body is for his eyes only.Ā
He thought Hank may feel a little embarrassed seeing the two of you like this, but there is none of that. Hank marched over; any social cues forgotten as he sat on the edge of the bed.Ā
āListen, bub, what could possibly be so urgent that you are sitting on the bed I just fucked my girl silly on?ā
āLogan!ā You scowl.
Hank rolls his eyes. āRaven is going to Washington. Trask is going to be at the White House tomorrow, and she plans to strike. We need to leave tonight.ā
āWhat is happening at the White House?ā Logan asked, sitting up on his elbows.
Hank shakes his head in a way that tells Logan it isnāt for anything good. āThey are presenting the Sentinel Program tomorrow.ā
āOh God,ā you mutter. āTrask is already that far along? Does that mean they could be unleashed sooner?ā
Logan shutters at the thought. The idea of the Sentinels starting their massacre whole decades earlier makes him uneasy. It scares him. He wonders if this means things are now going to be worse than they already were, which is hard to imagine. He doesnāt want to imagine it.Ā
He wishes he had more time. He doesnāt know when he will get to be like this with you again. It could feel like a matter of seconds, minutes, hours, days. He could wake up to a world where you and him donāt coincide. But at the end of the day, he needs to pull through for you and everyone else. His main priority is that he wakes up to a world where everyone is alive.
This is his last chance.
āAlright, weāll get up and get stuff together.ā Logan says, and with that Hank gets up with a nod.
As he makes his exit, Logan starts to get up, but not before he feels your arms wrapping around his torso trying to pull him back.
āSweetheart, we need to get up,ā Logan says softly, not wanting to disturb the peace in this room. Not wanting to unveil their reality.
āJust a few more minutes,ā you wager. āIāll freeze time if that means I can stay like this for a few more minutes.ā
He canāt deny you. God, he canāt. He lays back down to his original state, and before he can help himself the words are out in the open.
āI love you.ā
You didnāt respond, and thatās okay. He already knows you love him too.
The White House; Washington D.C.
āYes, I am with the marine band.ā
āYou are late, Sergeant. Get into position with the others.ā
āYes sir!ā
You move past the metal detectors, jogging towards the rest of the marine band members. There was an empty spot where the snare lies and you get into position, harness going over your shoulders. You fall into play, Stars and Stripes Forever sounding throughout the set up.
Itās perfect really. You are in the best position to see everything. You will be able to see Trask, the President, and other high ranking officials. If things fall into complete disarray, you will shift the time backward and have a complete do over. In the meantime, the guys will look for Raven before she can strike.
It was a string of luck thanks to Charlesās willingness to use his powers again. Hank had told you he had a change of heart, and while you had no proof of what convinced him, you had a feeling it had to do with the man who completely bared his soul to you last night.
Just the thought makes you blush. You arenāt one to let someone you barely know in your bed, giving yourself to them completely. Youāve been there, done that, and it never stuck or felt right. With Logan, it felt different. There is a bond between you both thatās inexplicably there. You have felt it from the start, and it was only confirmed after last night. The way he took care of you, made love to you; you could feel the love he felt for you and while scary to admit, you love him too.
He looks at you like you are the center of his universe. He looks at you like living isnāt worth shit unless you are by his side. It pains you but only because whatever happened in his future has scarred him deep. You could feel it in the way he kissed you, and left marks on your body. He was trying to convince himself that he wasnāt dreaming; that you were there.Ā
You donāt know what will happen after today, but what you do know is you will find him. You will find him, learn every detail about him until he is like a second skin, and love him like he deserves. You will make sure of it.
You look towards the metal detectors and see them passing through. You see Logan look in your direction, a smile shining towards you that you mirror right back. He looks you up and down, sending a wink your way before turning back to Charles and once again your face feels hot. His effect on you is absolutely outstanding.Ā
You can see Charles scanning the crowd, undoubtedly looking for Raven amongst the thousands of people. You keep your eyes on him, reading his expressions as he continues lurking. You arenāt sure what time it is but itās only a matter of time before President Nixon makes his speech. Even then, that doesnāt mean Raven wonāt strike before that.
āI havenāt found Raven yet. Be prepared.ā
You felt Charles rattling in your brain. You look in his direction to see everyone looking towards you and you nod to signal the message was clear.
The conductor cuts off the song, signaling the event is about to start. You focus your attention to the stage, looking for any kind of sign of Raven. Everything seems pristine, Secret Service covered at every point.Ā
āLadies and Gentlemen!ā You hear someone speak through the microphone on the podium. Your attention goes to the man, someone from Nixonās advisory team surely, standing before everyone. āIt is my utmost pleasure to welcome Mr. President Nixon!ā
You see the conductor wave his baton, signaling to start playing, and quickly you are rolling your sticks once the first beat drops. You watch, trying to look in your peripherals for anything weird, before you hear a gunshot.
Your eyes snap to the stage, and you see Trask lying there with a bullet to his head. People are losing their minds, standing erratically to get away from whoever the shooter was. You drop your drumsticks, quickly snapping your fingers to stop the commotion. Everything freezes, and you take the opportunity to walk away from your post. You make observations, needing to be quick, and it doesnāt take long for you to see Raven. Or at least make the assumption that itās her.
You see she transformed into a man from the Secret Service. The gun has since been lowered and you can see two other Secret Service officials running to tackle. You walk to look at the manās face, and it makes your lips purse slightly.
She is smiling. There is genuine joy in what she just did. Before time froze over, it was obvious she saw the other men coming to take her down, but she didnāt care. You see it in her face: she won. It didnāt matter what happened afterwards. She saved her kind, your kind.Ā
Except she didnāt, and thatās what kills you as you look at her. Her actions kill so many, and leave so many people without their loved ones. Your future livelihood is dismantled by the Sentinels, so deep down you understand Ravenās hatred for Trask. You hate him too, but you believe all will come to the light. Trask will get his due diligence, and hopefully itās something worse than death.
Humiliation. Defunding his work. Life behind bars. For a man like him, death would be too easy.
You pass her, heading towards the rest of the group. You get to Loganās side, and release a breath you didnāt know you needed to release. You lift your arms up and move them down slowly. As they descend, time rolls back like itās a moveable force. People that swarmed like ants are back in their seats, high security are back at their stations, the President makes his way back behind the stage, and Trask is back on his feet. Your hands clenched tight, holding everything in place before releasing and things continue on completely reset.
You lean down to Charles, making sure he hears you clearly. āSheās right there to the left of the stage. Act fast.ā
Charles looks in that direction, focusing with an urgency as he sets his sights on Raven. You watch the scene unfold again, and see how Raven goes to pull the gun from her jacket but she halts. You see her grow stiff, and her lips move like she is talking to someone.Ā
āIāve got her,ā Charles says with relief. āI can only hold her for so long.ā
āYou two go get her,ā Hank says as he gets behind Charles. āHe is right. Charles is still not as strong as he was before. You both need to be quick.ā
You nod and the two of you start trekking over to where Raven is. The President is talking, but itās muddled as you focus. The two of you walk slowly, but with urgency, not wanting to cause any alarm that would halt any progress. That didnāt matter, however, because right as you two are on her, a Secret Service agent is in front of you both.
āIām sorry, but this is as far as you two can go.ā He has his hands raised in front of him to prevent any further steps.Ā
āBehold! The world will never be the same againā¦ā The National Anthem kicks in, and you turn to see the American flag drop. What you see makes your jaw drop.Ā
Eight large robots. They couldnāt be more than twenty feet tall. Hell, it looks like they could stomp the average person out. The sheer size of them makes you uneasy, knowing what they can and will do makes your stomach churn.Ā
āIs that what they look like?ā You say quietly, your back now pressed against Loganās front.
āThis is just the start.ā Logan's right hand grabs yours, squeezing tightly. āBut we can change that.ā
You squeeze back just as tight, hoping it conveys that you are with him. āLet me stop the time so you can get her.ā You go to snap your fingers, but Logan squeezes your hand again as if to hold off.Ā
āWhat?ā
āDo you hear that?ā He yells over the cheers. āSomethingās coming.ā
Logan keeps looking around, and in his search is when you see something moving from the corner of your eye. You turn, and a lump starts forming in your throat.
āGood Godā¦ā
It is clockwork with how things evolved. The Sentinels, with their yellow eyes and shiny polymer, are no longer on their feet. They are in the air, carefully looking down on the crowd like they are Gods. They look so much bigger off the ground, and it unsettles you to no end.Ā
You see Trask and the Major talking, a look of frustration on the scientist's face. It confuses you because he is the one that has control over the giants. However, your question is answered when the sun seems to go away and only shadows linger in the shape of a ring. Rubble and debris fall from the sky, and once you look up you couldnāt believe what you were seeing.
A whole fucking stadium. Rows and rows of seats and cement foundation floating in the sky. It moves over the White House like a storm, slowly but surely coming with impending coverage. It is only as the inner circle enters your vision that you see Erik, carrying the weight of it like it was nothing.
The Sentinels rise higher, going up towards the floating anomaly as it surrounds it. You think for a second that maybe they were activated because they detected the threat. However, as you watch them reach the top, taking places like they are guarding a post with arms drawn, you know it wasnāt anyone commanding them from the ground, but from the sky.Ā
āHoly shit Erikā¦ā you whisper to yourself, some disbelief edged into your voice. Erik was a powerful mutant, that you knew, but this? This was next level.
āIām getting Raven!ā
Before you can say anything, Logan is running to tackle Raven down, but it doesn't matter. The minute he is on his feet, bullets are raining from the sky in droves.Ā
āLogan, get back!ā You yell, running to pull him back before the mass array of bullets hit him.
āIāll be fine! I can take them!ā Logan yells over the madness of crowds flocking away. āWe need to get her!ā
āLook around!ā You grab his shoulders, shaking them. āIt doesnāt matter if we get her now. We need to get Erik and we canāt if we are both down!ā
You donāt wait for him to answer, dragging him to rubble that had made its way to the ground. You look around it, trying to get eyes on Charles and Hank before the ground shakes. Logan has his arms around you, covering your body with his to protect it from any kind of blow.Ā
Itās quiet for a moment as the dust settles. You peep out again, trying to locate the other two again. The field was a ghost town, the crowd able to escape before the stadium trapped them in. The President, Trask, and others were gone, assuming they went into some sort of hiding place that only they know about. It is only then that you realize Raven is no longer to be seen, which makes you think she went into hidingā¦ with them.
āOh noā¦āĀ
āWhat?ā Logan whispers, his eyes trained elsewhere.
āI think Raven is with Trask.ā
āUnfortunately, I think we have a bigger fucking problem now.ā Logan curses with eyes unmoving.
You look to see where he is staring, and you see Erik walking towards the White House before stopping. His hands go out in front of him, moving them like he is scanning for something.
You feel something in your mind move, and you gasp when you hear the voice in your head. āCharles?ā
āMy dear, we are running out of time.ā You hear Charles echo in your head. āIf you or Logan can get Erikās helmet off of him, I can stop him.ā
āOkay, on it.ā You turn in Loganās hold, back now against the rubble. āWe need to get the helmet off him. I will stop time while you grab it.ā
āSounds easy enough,ā Logan grunts, crouching in front of you.Ā
āAlright, here we go.ā You focus all your energy on your surroundings before snapping your fingers. Your fists are secured, and you look at Logan before nodding his way. āGo on.ā
He goes to get up but stops for a second before coming back down. His lips are on yours, a long peck before releasing you. Youāre stunned, not expecting such a romantic gesture. āIāll be back for you, baby.ā
Heās off, running towards Erik. You watch as he makes it up to him, carefully removing the helmet and putting it under his arm. He is on his way back, holding the helmet close as he gets back to where you stood. You both crouch back down, and you unclench your fists letting time continue its course.Ā
āCharles, heās all yours,ā you say with the hope he can hear you.
Itās quiet for only a moment when you hear something heavy fall to the ground. You hear a yell, one that sounded exactly like Charles, and you shoot up. You see some particles in the air to your right, steel and concrete a heap on the ground. You see brown hair, and then you see Hank, fully in his true blue form, trying to lift the heavy weight off of Charles. Panic sets in, not really sure how bad the damage is but it stirs you to stand up and release the alarming catharsis that bubbles to the surface.
āCharles!ā You scream, your fight or flight response taking the former as you run towards them. You sense Logan right behind you, following your trail as you approach the mess. You almost make it, ready to stop time again but then you feel something graze your arm and then a stretch of pain that takes you out.
You fall with a grunt, holding your left arm as you curse to yourself. Blood is making its way down your arm, and you work to put pressure on it but it continues to seep through the cracks of your fingers. Shit, shit, shit!
You hear more bullets go off towards you, and your heart is in your throat as you expect to be battered, but they donāt come. They donāt come because Logan is in front of you, body jerking as he works to pick you up as wounds form from his back.Ā
āHoly shit, Logan!āĀ
āHold on!ā He seethes in pain, holding you close as he gets you both behind another pile of rubble.Ā
You both have your backs to the scene unfolding, but you know there isnāt much time to stay here. With haste, you unbuckle your belt, flinging it out of the jean loops and wrapping it below the bullet wound. Your teeth sink into the leather, pulling it tightly before securing it.Ā
You look over at Logan, who is surrounded by the pellets he pushed out from his back. He grunts as one more falls to the ground behind him, and he turns to you with an alertness youāve become all too familiar with.
āAre you okay?ā You ask stupidly, because of course he is.
He doesnāt answer at first, looking at you and then looking back at the destroyed lawn. It causes you to look too, and you can see Hank clobbering one of the Sentinels as he yanks out its wiring. But heās outnumbered and itās only a matter of time before they gang up on him.Ā
āWe need to help Hank,ā you say, getting ready to stand up before Loganās hand grabs you by your jean loops.
Loganās hands are on your face, holding it still as to keep your focus on him. There is conflict in the way he looks at you; a conflict that says you wonāt agree with what heās about to do next. You can read him so easily, and what you are reading makes you uneasy.
āNo, Loganā¦āĀ
āSweetheart, I need you to stay right here.ā His eyes are saying so much more in relation, telling you why heās asking you this. You know he has lost too much, and to lose it all before itās even started isnāt in the cards for him. Still, you canāt help the stubbornness that begs to fight with him.
āIām not leaving you defenseless out there.āĀ
āThen defend us from here,ā Logan says firmly, mind unchanging. āI will not lose you here. I am not going back to a future where you donāt exist.ā
Itās quiet for a second, words processing in your head. You knew he loved you, but to see it run so deep at his declaration made you want to cry. How is it a man that you havenāt known for long, can have such an effect on you? How is it that a part of him already runs so deeply inside you? It leaves you with the conclusion that if you are feeling all of this after a few days, then what he must be feeling is tenfold after a lifetime.Ā
Your hands go to his face, mirroring him as you two stare at each other. Heās waiting for you to accept what he is asking, eyes moving back and forth slightly like he is trying to read your response. You sigh deeply, swallowing the pill he wants you to take before you pull him down to your lips to seal your acceptance.Ā
He grunts in surprise, but shortly after melts against you. Itās a kiss molded into words, one that says āthank youā and in kind says āIāll see you after this is all overā. Itās a kiss that says even when there truly is no time left, there is always time for this, for you, for him.
You pull away, eyes watering as you look at the man who will ultimately become your world and your savior in ways you canāt begin to fathom. You give him one more good look, one more stroke of your thumbs against his facial hair, before dropping your hands to surrender.Ā
āYou come back to me safe,ā you assert. āI will do as much as I can from here.ā
Logan responds by kissing your lips again, placing three quick kisses in succession before standing up to run off towards the mess. You peek over from your hiding spot, and you see two of the Sentinels on the ground in its robotic guts. You hear Hank roaring to your left, seeing him fly to the ground onto his back. The Sentinel he was fighting approaches, armed and ready to fire.Ā
You clench your teeth as you put your arms out, the wounded one shooting signals to your brain that it aches terribly. However, you push through, focusing on the Sentinels mechanics and the timely energy around it. You watch it slowly come to a stop, and you see Hank look your way before you nod your head to tell him to get the job done.
You watch him spring into action, hands digging into the skull before ripping the head off. You let go, with the Sentinel now inactive, and turn to see Logan with his claws out digging into the chest of another one. His clawed fists go in and out over and over, the automaton down.Ā
You go back and forth between Hank and Logan, ensuring them the time they need to defend themselves safely. Itās a smooth rhythm, and you think things are going well, but then you see Erik appear a few feet away from Logan with metal pieces floating in the air. You go to stop Erik in his tracks, but then you hear running in your direction.Ā
āRun!ā You hear Hank yell, and you turn to see him sprinting away from two Sentinels.Ā
āShit!ā You curse, and in the blink of an eye you are running with him, bullets hot on your trail.
You run with purpose, dodging whatever the Sentinels sent your way, but your attention was focused on Logan, who was cutting away at any metallic pieces Erik threw at him. It was a dance, every step forward meant a step back, and from what you were witnessing Logan was the better dancer. However, Erik has always been good at catching up.
The Sentinels are gaining ground, and you knew something had to give. They were doing what they were created for, and they wouldnāt stop now, not at this rate. You look at Hank as you both push on, and he looks back at you as he feels your eyes on him.
āWe need to split off!ā You yell at him. āYou go towards that car over there, and Iāll go the opposite way.ā
You both diverge, running away from one another in the hopes of confusing the Sentinels. You donāt hear bullets in your space anymore, but it causes you to look and see Hank surrounded. You go to stop them, but then a gasp shoots from your lungs as you feel metal wrap around your wrists. Next thing you know, you are hanging in the air.
You are thrashing, wrists bound tightly. You see Erik approaching you, and you panic but not because he is approaching you. Itās because you donāt see Logan.
Fuck, whereās Logan?
āIām sorry, my little timelord,ā Erik says with a hint of an actual apology. āThis is what happens when you donāt choose a side.ā
āI did what was best for me. No one else,ā you grit out. You can feel blood start to trickle down your arm, the stretch opening your wound further.
āI guess youāll see how that turns out for you.ā Erik sets you onto the ground with a thud, and suddenly you feel metal coil around your neck. You start to feel the pressure against your throat, making your eyes bulge.
āNo need to be scared, my dear. Just need you out of the picture for a few hours.ā Your airways are getting crushed. Your hands are desperately trying to remove themselves from the makeshift cuffs, but to no avail.Ā
The coughing fits start, lungs eager for some relief, but they cry out when none comes. Itās strange to feel your lifespan waning, yet have your mind linger elsewhere.
Please be okay. God, please let Logan be safe.
As if your prayers were answered, you hear him in the distance. You can hear him shouting your name, and you ache at the sound. You are relieved, yet there is a sadness that sticks in your foggy brain. It almost makes you think that soul bonding is an actual force within the universe because you can tell what he is feeling. You can tell he feels like he is witnessing your death a second time.Ā
The bondage of metal weakens, air filling your lungs at full capacity. Your hands automatically go to your throat, rubbing the raw skin as you inhale and exhale. Your bearings are dispersed, and you work to gather all the pieces so you can see what is happening. It isnāt until you hear Logan yelling in pain, followed by grunts that rip from his gut, that you shoot up. Your eyes focus and what you see burns your chest as you let out a scream that processes faster than your mind can.
Metal rods pierce Loganās body, curling into his legs and up his chest. They enter and exit like thread, and his facial expression is one of agony. His head turns towards you, his eyes screaming for you to look away and to run and never look back. However, your fears, your anger, your love for him is overcoming and it doesnāt take long for you to snap.
Your body screams as you move to your knees and throw your arms up, the aches telling you to stop wearing yourself further. Your power is straining, but your emotions are fueling the fire. No amount of pain will ever amount to the pain of losing Logan.Ā
You slam your fists to the ground, a ricochet from the impact spreading. Time stops in motion, the waves of your power spreading and catching everything in its wake. The pain increases, but you donāt care about that. You only care about Logan.
Everything is still aside from Loganās body shakes. You run to him, falling to your knees to get closer. Your energy is depleting as you hold onto time, making your mind race to figure out what to do to help him. Your hands keep going to touch the rods, but back away every time he shudders with discomfort.
āLogan, tell me what to do,ā you plead. āTell me what I need to do to get these out.ā
āFuckā¦ā Logan is working his jaw, seemingly trying to calm himself down. āTry pulling on one.ā
You nod, placing both hands on a rod buried in his back. You counted down from three, and with a deep breath you pulled as hard as you could. The second Logan started yelling though, you let go.
āShit! Please stop!ā Logan shouts, the metal rods excruciating.
āLogan, we need to get these out of you please.ā You were starting to sob; your hands running over his neck and face to try and soothe him.
āSweetheart, please,ā Logan grunts, trying not to move too much. āI promise you this wonāt kill me.ā
āBut you are suffering,ā you whisper, tears staining your face as new ones form. āI can hold this just please. You have to push them out or something.ā
Something changes in Loganās face, a sense of realization as you watch his eyes widen. A broken laugh leaves his lips, eyes glossing. āI finally understand.ā
āW-what?ā You stutter.
āI desperately wanted to save you, and I couldnāt. You had begged me not to, and I couldnāt fathom it.ā He starts to cough, groans filling the cracks. āBut I understand now. Iām sorry for not understanding before.ā
āPlease donāt,ā you choke. āThat doesnāt matter. What matters now is getting these out of you.āĀ
Your hands go to the rods again, but his hand grabs yours before you make contact. You are sure you look pitiful, especially as you arenāt one to beg. You guess when feelings get so strong, it doesnāt matter. Your heart is fully on your sleeve for Logan to see, and what you are showing is reflected in his pretty, glossy, hazel eyes.Ā
āI need you to promise me something, sweetheart,ā Logan says gently. āI need you to promise me that you will find me.ā
āWhere? Where will I find you?ā Your voice wavers, unable to keep your emotions at bay.Ā
āYou know I canāt say, baby.ā Loganās hand squeezes yours, trying to be reassuring. āBut you have before. I know you will find me again.ā
You donāt know what to think of that. It could be years before you find him. Will it be right before the world goes to shit? Will it be in a decade or two from now? How can you go on living your life as normal when you donāt know when you will find him? Or how can you live knowing he isnāt right beside you?
āDonāt overthink this. Everything will be okay.ā
You sniffle as you look at him, a tired smile on his face. A small laugh passes through your sobs. āNot very in character for you to be optimistic.ā
āAnd it will be the last time you see me so optimistic for a long time,ā Logan smirks. āBut you can change that.ā
You get on your stomach, moving so your face is level with his and kiss him one last time. Itās bittersweet, tasting him on your tongue. You hope you are conveying the answer he is looking for, one that tells him you promise to move heaven and earth for him. One that tells him you promise you are his, and no one will ever have you for as long as you both live. A promise that tells him you will find your way home to him, and you will bring him home to you.
You let go, breath wavering as you know what you are about to witness. Even with his reassurance, it will be hard to watch, and you know the tears will fall. It is inevitable.
āBaby, go find Charles. Make sure he is okay and stick with him. Once you find him, let me go.ā
You nod, pecking his lips one more time before getting up to your feet. You look at him, taking in every detail that imprints your memory, making sure to never forget that the man before you is your soulmate for life.
āI love you, Logan.ā You say with teary eyes.Ā
āI love you. Iāll see you soon.ā He smiles, before closing his eyes, preparing himself.
You quickly run off, afraid that if you didnāt you wouldnāt allow yourself to. You run over to the giant terrain of rubble where Charles was, and you see him lying there frozen like everything else. You maneuver into his spot, a tight fit with enough room for you to situate yourself. You look back out onto the field, and you quiver as you see Logan lying there just waiting as he suffers in pain. You look down, eyes squeezing tight before you snap your fingers, a heavy weight off your shoulders as you suck in a deep breath.
āOh darling, when did you get in here?ā
You open your eyes to see Charles, breathing heavier than usual as he lays in discomfort. You work to prop him up, holding onto him so he can sit up right. It is at that moment you hear yelling, and you look back out to see Logan in the air with Erik holding his metallic weight. You want to look away, unable to bear the sight, but they stay glued to them. Then, you see Erik flex his fingers.
As you watch Logan fly away, your lungs urge a cry to curl out into the atmosphere, but you suppress it. After everything, you have faith in him. He gave you the faith you needed to believe everything will turn out alright. Even as you watch Erik yank the bunker up from the ground and out the White House, you have faith that the future will be safe, because you wonāt let Logan down. You have a promise to keep.
Logan has become your Orion; your guiding star. He has become your alpha and your omega. He is your sole mission in this life, and he is not a mission you plan to fail.
You will set things right, and you will find him.Ā
Xavierās School for Gifted Youngsters; Westchester, NY; Year 2023
The first time ever I saw your faceā¦
Music. Soft, calming music enters his conscience. Heās heard this melody before in the same fashion, but that was forever ago, right?Ā
I thought the sun rose in your eyesā¦
Logan stirs, his brain doing a leap and a jump from REM sleep as it tries to wake up. He has lived this moment before, as the music says he has. Is he back to where he started? Or is it something else?
And the moon and the stars were the gifts you gaveā¦
Where is he? The last thing he remembers was drowning. Metal pierced his body so deep he could taste it with freshwater. It should linger, but it doesnāt. He doesnāt taste anything abnormal. Heās on a bed. Did someone save him? Whose bed is this?Ā
To the dark and the endless skiesā¦
His eyes open, sunlight shining brightly as they adjust. The room is familiar, and it dawns on him that itās because it is his room. Their room.Ā
He turns to his side slowly, his body still adjusting to whatever the fuck it was heās waking up to. He sees the little radio on the bedside table, the holographic globe spinning as the words āGolden Oldiesā glide around it.Ā
And the first time ever I kissed your mouthā¦
Holy shitā¦ he did it.Ā
Suddenly, the door opens, and nothing could have prepared him.Ā
āHey, sleepyhead!ā
There you were in all your glory. You were dressed for the day: a tight and long black velvet skirt with a short black sleeve shirt and black combat boots. There are little crow's feet and bunny lines by your eyes and your hair has grown out. He is starstruck, and his heart is threatening to leap out of his chest.
You walked up to him, your legs touching the bed as you looked down at him. āI know I look good. No need to let the flies in.ā
Logan shuts his mouth, moving to sit up. There are so many things he wants to say, do. But nothing will come out. All he can do is stare and bumble like an idiot.
āYou know itās nine, right? You missed your first class.āĀ
His class?
āWhat?ā
āDonāt worry, Lo. Your students got a little lesson from me about 70s music culture, so they werenāt totally out of a history lesson.ā You say with a wink.
He doesnāt respond, eyes mesmerized as you walk over to the desk, putting away folders from what he assumes was the previous class.
āCan you believe these kids know nothing about the Ramones? Or even ELO or Fleetwood Mac? Itās blasphemous.ā You shut the drawer, and go to lean back against the desk, smiling at him.
āIāll get up, baby. Donāt you worry about me.ā You say in a mock deep voice, pushing yourself off the furniture. āLast night must have really worn you out for you to sleep like the dead.āĀ
You are giggling and Logan is on edge. You are here. You are alive. He was hopeful that would be the case, but to see everything come to fruition was a lot to process.Ā
āLo, baby, are you okay?ā You are in front of him, moving in between his legs.Ā
He canāt help himself. He has his arms around your thighs, pulling you onto his lap. His hand secures itself at the nape of your neck, bringing your head down to his so his lips can intercept yours. Your skirt has ridden up, scrunching up at your ass giving Logan the chance to mold his hand into the flesh. He kisses you with ferocity, needing everything from you.
āLogan,ā you laughed between his kisses. āI canāt believe you want to go again after last night, you dog.ā
āYouāre here,ā Logan groans against your lips. āMy baby, youāre here.ā
āOf course Iām here. Why wouldnāt I be?ā Your hands scratch his head, and he simpers as his mouth attaches to your neck, sniffing your pulse point as he keeps you firmly against him. You smell so good, so much so he wants to soak you into his skin.
āYou are acting so strange right now, baby. Are you sure everything is okay?ā
Logan lays his head against your chest, listening to your heart flutter away. He could cry listening to it, the comforting sound creating a lullaby that will lull his sore head to rest. Itās different hearing it now, knowing that when he wakes up once more, you will be here. You will be by his side when he goes to sleep at night, and when he wakes up. He will share every sunset and sunrise with you, something he will never take for granted for even a second.Ā
He feels your hands cradling his head, keeping it steady as he starts to rock you in his arms. āWhat are you thinking, Lo?ā
He lifts his head to look at you, your eyes full of warmth. You are looking at him with such patience and poise. Your hands are still on his head, and he goes to move them to his temples.Ā
āShift my mind.ā
āLogan,ā you say, taken aback and unsure but he quells your worry with another slow kiss.
āTrust me,ā he murmurs against your mouth. āI need you to understand what I am feeling right now.ā
He shuts his eyes, hoping you will indulge him and he smiles when he feels the warmth at his temples spread. He thought his mind going back to his last memory of drowning would cause panic, but he is calm. Maybe itās because you are able to keep him afloat as you rewind what played out.
It is short lived, but soon he feels your hands go down to the scruff of his facial hair. He opens his eyes and he sees the tears welling in your eyes with a smile.Ā
āMy God, you did it. You remember,ā you choked out. Logan canāt help but smother your lips again before kissing your tears away.
āYou did a lot of the heavy lifting, sweetheart.ā Logan chuckles against your skin. āBut most importantly,ā he pulls away, hands going to your face to make sure you understand how sincere he is. āYou found me. Just like you promised me.ā
āI said I would,ā you say through tears. āI was determined to find you. To share this life with you.ā
This life. A life with all the good things and even the bad ones. A life that he gets to live with you. This new life: a second chance. With this second chance, he isnāt going to waste it.Ā
āClose your eyes,ā Logan says with a peck.
You shut them, and he carefully sets you on the bed for him to stand up. He rushes to the bookshelf, hoping that in this new timeline he was smart enough to have gotten the one thing that showed complete and utter devotion. Even more so, he hopes he hid it where he originally had.Ā
He finds the royal blue spine, pulling it out to open to the first few pages before the hole within the book is revealed. His lips turn with a quiver, seeing the ring just as it was before. He picks it up, holding it out in the sunlight to watch the diamond sparkle and the gold ban shine. Itās simple but you were never one for extravagant things. After a life of running free, you wanted the simple life and that is exactly what he will give you.
He walks back around the bed, getting on his knees to settle between your legs as he spreads them. Your skirt rode up again and he canāt help but kiss your left thigh and give the other a squeeze. The sweetest noise comes from you, and it only makes him nip at the skin.Ā
āGod, you are such a tease.ā
āI canāt resist,ā he hums before lifting his head. He holds out the ring and with care takes your left hand in his right.Ā
āGo ahead and open those pretty eyes for me.āĀ
He watches your eyes flutter open, a gasp falling from your lips when your eyes fall onto his palm. Your fingers instinctively went to it, and Logan held it more towards you to let them grace the ring.Ā
āIāve thought about how Iāve wanted to do this so many times,ā Logan starts. āSo much so that I pushed it off until it was too late. I will not make that same mistake twice.ā
āLogan,ā you say with your fingers trailing to his face, as if telling him nothing is his fault. He knows.
āI know I have so much to catch up on and learn. There will be things I am not aware of. You may be different, and I may be different,ā He takes the ring and your left hand, holding it near but not quite enacting the officiality. āBut the one thing that will never change is how you will always be at the forefront of my mind because I am nothing without you. At the end of the day, I want to come home to you as your husband and you as my wife if you will have me.ā
This is such a vulnerable moment, and there was a time where it would eat him up alive. However, being right here with you, proposing to you in this shared room under the light of the morning, encourages him like nothing else. Vulnerability with you gives him strength.
You are biting your lip, eyes watering again as you nod your head profusely. āPut that ring on my finger, handsome.ā
He slides the ring onto your ring finger, settling into place perfectly. You held it up, and he watched as you admired the piece, the sparkle of the diamond reflecting in your eyes. It sparks you to look back at him, wrapping your arms around his neck and he notices you shift until your lower body pushes him onto the floor. Your arms bring him in, his head meeting yours as lips reconnect once more.
āI love you so much, Logan. I am truly the luckiest woman alive.āĀ
All he can think is if you were the luckiest woman, then he is the luckiest man. One decision could have led to a world in which you didnāt exist or one where you two would just be specks living completely different lives. To have woken up in a new world, one thatās more promising, is luck after the hell he had experienced. Having you here in his lap, kissing him like he is the center of your universe, makes him weep with joy.Ā
You are his world, and in this new life, rather than the world stopping, it continues to spin forward.
#logan howlett x reader#logan howlett#logan howlett smut#logan howlett angst#wolverine x reader#wolverine smut#logan howlett fic#logan smut#logan angst#logan fic#x-men fic#my fics
321 notes
Ā·
View notes
Text
The general dialogue between Eric and that AOL girl regarding his philosophy on love has always stood out to me. It's one of the very few moments of vulnerability we've been given / able to find on his character over the past twenty years.
Eric always had his guard up. We all mostly know this from his own writings, no one acts like how he portrayed himself naturally. But, also including the accounts given about him from other people in his life, important or not, before and after passing. Mostly commonly described as aggressive and irritable, yet closed-off and restrained.
Alongside that online exchange, the only other times I can think of were when he called out of work to be there for his sick dog, or the innocent adoration he held toward his older brother, alongside sincere respect for his mother, of course, Reb's "I wish I were a fucking sociopath" Tape, and (arguably) his undisclosed email to his childhood best friend.
He talked about love like he was an outsider. A still figure watching it & whatever shape it may take maneuver around him, but not having the ability to engage. Let alone even acknowledge the fact it could be something of his own as well if he reached his hand out to touch it, but that wasn't even a possibility for him at that moment. Feeling comfortable enough to bring it up, but never to address it directly. Mentioning what he believed, but never outright saying it, afraid to cross a boundary. Though, he was still very careful with his wording despite not feeling confident enough to state his opinion in full. Being just general enough so he didn't risk the girl disagreeing with his words because he didn't give her an opening to do so, but still baring just a bit of his self to her through his ego because it was just the two of them.
Everyone talks about the concept of "love" relating to the case in reference to DK, because it was something that openly consumed him in private, but in a way, I feel the same just might have applied to Eric as well. But, like many other things relating to him, he hid it all away inside of himself. To live is to be vulnerable, and the times Eric was, never ended in his favor. Hence why he conditioned himself to be so isolated from everyone else, emotionally independent.
When Eric did openly talk about his doctrine on love, it was that degenerate & exploitative journal passage in which he wrote in depth about the idea of forcing himself onto certain women in his life alongside gaudy band lyrics. Considering how hesitant he was to directly speak to another girl about love, even under the context they were both being open with each other, the passage was likely written out of some kind of complex frustration. To compensate for how he felt like such a stranger in the face of it, but remarkably knowledgeable when speaking objectively. He wasn't being honest with himself, but still desperately needed some kind of liberation as an attempt to stop whatever feeling of desire he harbored from further stirring inside him.
The passion that stems from hatred is something I'm sure we all know Eric was well acquainted with. I think the hate inside of him masked the love, being overshadowed and making it appear small. It was definitely there, but seldom did it get a voice to speak in comparison to the amount of steam he let out on a general basis.
Eric cared a lot. When you look past the ego he presented to the whole world, he wasn't an individual with ASPD by any stretch of the means. He wanted not to be independent, but his life made him feel that was the only option he could truly rely on with the social instability he faced growing up. He wanted to be seen. I'm sure many people have voiced this before, but it's truly heart-wrenching to think he was doing this big finale act with his best friend, maybe because he had his best friend there to do it with him, only to find out post-mortem that DK didn't hold him to the same high regard. Maybe close, but not at all on the exact same level.
Putting the fact aside both of them expressed fantasies of doing NBK with their own respective "dream girl," DK wanted other options for someone to go through with the date, other actual people in his life, but from Eric's point-of-view, it had to be Dylan. Dylan was one of the very few people in his life, the only one still present with him, that aided his desire not to be alone. To be seen as an individual. To be vulnerable. Under the impression Dylan felt the same way he did, or at least something similar ... and while I won't deny it was there, it just wasn't as significant to the other party.
"What one person calls true love (EH) can be just another cheap thrill to another (DK)."
I'd like to specify that my goal with this post isn't to send the message that they were "gay," nor point out any form of "romantic chemistry," but rather to emphasize how languished love was overall in Eric's life. Also, I think there's an absurdist humor that comes from the irony of him saying this with what we know would follow half at his hands (you know who the other half is).
They both loved each other as friends, without a doubt, but it's so tragic to think that Eric's closest bond, a connection of love so intimate yet unrelated to direct societal romance, which created a strength so abundant that it started a ripple effect worldwide that still persists to this very day, wasn't quite requited the way he thought it was. Just like every other published bond of his, in his sad little existence.
#eric columbine#dylan columbine#eric and dylan#tcc columbine#Not going crazy on the tags for this since It's a bit embarrassing to discuss my take on certain things... sigh.#I'll go armchair psychologist about how EH may or may not have had BPD another day when I enter another state of neurosis. LOL#I am not a truther on the āDylan was his FPā theory though. Not one bit. >.>#āļø
490 notes
Ā·
View notes
Text
I Knew You
Summary: You and Steve Harrington have hated each other ever since sixth grade, which made living next door to him all the more miserable. It hadn't always been like that though, shared smiles and loving gestures in secret before popularity went to his head. But now, Steve somehow keeps finding ways to squeeze himself back into your life, making you question if the boy you once knew, the one you might have loved, still lived somewhere within him.
Note: Its been a bit since I last posted, but I had this idea and really wanted to write it. I'm currently drowning with work and school stuff for my masters so my next fic might take a hot minute and will definitely be shorter. This takes place in the fall after season 4 and both Eddie and Max survived with minimal injuries. Itās also partially inspired by Cardigan by Taylor Swift, hence the lyrics as chapter titles. This ended up being way longer than I intended for it to be, but I hope you enjoy!
Warnings: 18+, no use of y/n (reader is referred to as Baby), smut, unprotected sex, oral sex (female receiving), enemies to lovers, language, mentions of blood/injuries, some cannon divergence, fluff, angst, slowburn.
Pairings: Steve Harrington x reader
Word count: 30.5k (I got carried away)
I knew Iād curse you for the longest time
The last salt of the summer air lazed its way through the breeze, picking up the fresh fallen leaves with it. There wasnāt enough foliage on the ground to worry about raking them just yet, but it still brought a chill down your spine at the thought of autumnās rapid approach. You were sitting on the window bench in your room with a book in your hands and your back against the wall as the breeze floated through the open window, making the curtains dance despite being drawn back. It was a moment of quiet, something you desperately needed.
You were lost in words on the page before you, taking them in sentence after sentence, until the loud slam of a door interrupted your trance. The sound of the door was followed by singing, loud and obnoxious singing. More specifically, Steve Harringtonās loud and obnoxious singing. He had just strolled into his room, playing air guitar along to whatever metal song he was bellowing. A metal song that you presumed Eddie had played so many times on the tape player in his van that it somehow ingrained itself into Steveās pop-hits brain.Ā
You sighed, shaking your head to try and brush off the noise as if this was a daily occurrence. Well, it almost was, in some form or another. You lived next door to Steve Harrington for as long as you could remember. Your bedroom windows faced each other too, allowing each of you to gain small, often unwelcome, glimpses into the otherās life. Just about every girl in school had come up to you at least once to tell you how lucky you were to have such an easy way to see Steve Harrington. Then theyād always proceed to ask if they could join you for a sleepover at your house, no doubt just to get a chance to spy on the boy in his natural habitat.Ā
Your eyes flitted back down to the page, stuck on the same sentence ever since your ears were met with the unwelcome disturbance that was Steve Harringtonās singing. Heād moved on from singing to vocalizing the songās guitar solo, which was somehow even more annoying. Steveās arms moved wildly up and down his fake guitar as he banged his head up and down. If you werenāt so annoyed youād honestly be impressed by the amount of endurance Steveās performance surely required. But you were annoyed. Annoyed enough to finally speak up.Ā
āDo you constantly have to make so much noise or do you just like to hear the sound of your own voice?ā your remark rang out through the open window, trickling through the air to reach Steveās room. You didnāt look up from your book, doing your best to look unbothered. Steve stopped singing and thrashing about. His heavy breaths evened out slightly before he responded, slowly approaching the window sill.
āDo you constantly have a stick up your ass or do you just like to pretend that you do?ā your eyes widened at that, putting your book to the side as you turned to face the window, to face Steve. He had a smirk on his lips, one that you were more than familiar with by now. It was the smirk he flashed each time he said something that he knew would piss you off. Quite frankly, it was the expression you were most familiar with seeing Steve wear at this point in your life.Ā
āIf thereās a stick up my ass then it's only because you put it there,ā it was a lame comeback. You knew it. Steve knew it. But they canāt all be winners. You winced as the words fell from your lips, waiting for Steveās retaliation, which was sure to be unsavory.
āI donāt recall ever doing that. But Baby, if you bend over Iād be more than happy to oblige,ā Steve's smirk grew wider. Whether it was the stupid nickname or the sexual nature of his response that caused the flash of his pearly teeth, you didnāt know. However, you did know that you hated it, all of it. You hated that you constantly walked right into his dumb little comebacks. You hated that he seemingly had an endless supply of them just for you. You hated the day that the stupid nickname was ever aimed in your direction and you hated that Steve Harrington was the one to do it.Ā
It was late September 1978. Summer was still putting up a fight, albeit a weak one, to keep its warmth in the air. It had rained the night before, washing away the fresh fallen leaves to get stuck in the gutters along the roof or in the storm drains beside the narrow streets. School had only started back up a few weeks ago, and somehow, Steve found himself climbing the popularity ranks. It was a big deal for a sixth grader whoād only just begun his journey at Hawkins Middle to be so admired so fast, but Steve was already starting to see people worship the ground he walked on. He liked the idea of it, that he could waltz through the door of some place and up and run it so soon. His dad always said that the Harringtons were winners, and Steve knew he would be nothing if he disappointed his dad.Ā
Steve was walking to school that morning, Tommy and Carol to his left as a group full of his classmates followed closely behind. It was as if Steve had his very own entourage. They were a few blocks from the school when he saw it, a bike abandoned on the grass next to the sidewalk. There was a backpack beside it too, laying face down as if it had been thrown off in haste. It didnāt take long for Steve to realize why the bike before him looked so familiar. It was the same one he had seen you on almost every day that summer. The bike you rode to the library, to Loverās Lake, to the movie theater, to the quarry. As long as it was a place with a good story waiting to be watched or read, or a quiet environment to immerse yourself in a good book, someone was sure to find you there with that bike.Ā
Steve panicked for a moment, preparing himself to run to the police station and report that you had been kidnapped. But then he looked up. You were hunched over the sidewalk a few yards up, picking at something on the surface of the cement. Steveās legs moved, the others following, and stopped once again, this time only a few feet from where you sat on the sidewalk. Steveās brows furrowed as he looked down, finally getting a good look at what you were doing.Ā
You sat there, slowly and gently peeling the dried worms from the sidewalk. Then you parted the grass next to the sidewalk, putting the worm down to get it as close to the soil as possible. Steve watched you curiously as you moved on to the next worm. It was then that the breeze picked up a bit, shifting away the hair that covered your face. Steve saw it, the tear tracks running down your cheeks as you struggled with the worms that Steve was sure were already dead. A few chuckles sounded from the group behind Steve, and suddenly he remembered that it was not just you and him on that sidewalk.
You too had suddenly become aware of your audience then, head snapping up to see the group in front of you. Your eyes landed on Steve. His expression was etched with empathy, an emotion Steve still held onto no matter how much Tommy tried to strip it from him in his sudden rise to king status. At that moment you didnāt care about the others or the tears that still leaked down your soft cheeks. You cared about the poor worms that stuck to the sidewalk. Your gaze landed on Steve, appealing to the boy who lived beside you for so many years.
āThe rain,ā you sniffled and Steveās heart ached at the sound. Heād seen you cry before, as he was sure you had seen him cry too, through the cracks in the curtains obscuring bedroom windows. Each time Steve had to stop himself from marching over to your house and wrapping you in a comforting hug. It was an urge that he still had to repress, even here and now. āThe rain cools down the sidewalk and the worms like to come out onto it. But it- itās not raining anymore. It's too hot for them now. They- theyāre burning alive,ā fresh tears fell, replacing the old ones. They ran races against each other, fighting to be the first to drip off of your chin and onto the cement below. Steveās mouth opened, but he was cut off by the boy beside him.
āWhatever, worm girl. Just move out of the way so we can get to school,ā Tommyās words rang through the air, the entourage laughing at you from behind him. Steve could picture it now, youād spend the rest of middle and high school deemed as the worm girl. Youād hide in all of your classes, eat lunch by yourself in the library, and ignore the taunts that echoed throughout the hallway. Worm girl, worm girl, worm girl. Youād leave Hawkins the day after graduation, a car full of boxes, your life packed up and tucked away in each, and youād never return. Youād start a new life in a new city that only knows you by your real name, not some playground-esque tease that stupid Tommy Hagan awarded you in 6th grade. Youād be happy there, build a place you could call home, find your one true love, and Steve would never see you again.Ā
Steve had to stop this now. He had to bury the name worm girl in the ground before it could ever fully emerge. And there was only one way that Steveās prepubescent brain could think how. Your eyes flickered from Tommy before landing back on Steve, willing him to say something, to defend you. Maybe that was too much to ask.
āDamn, that was lame. Worm girl, really? Are we five?ā Steve pulled his gaze from yours. He couldnāt bear to see the look of hope that blossomed in your eyes. Not with what he was about to say next. āI mean, if anything, we should call her Baby since sheās crying like one,ā small giggles sounded off behind Steve before being overtaken by full-blown giggles and laughs. And there it was. Steveās master plan had come to fruition. Replace a bad nickname with a not-as-bad nickname. It wasnāt a great plan, he knew that, especially when he saw the scrunch of your brows and the quiver of your bottom lip, but it was the best that Steveās 11-year-old thoughts could conjure on such short notice. And Baby really wasnāt that bad. It's a term of endearment for Christ's sake. Or at least thatās what Steve would tell himself.
Tommy laughed from beside Steve, throwing an arm over Carol and guiding her to walk around you. The others followed, hurling a few taunting calls of āBabyā at you as they walked by. You looked back down at the ground, refocusing yourself on the task at hand, ignoring the cracks running along the foundations of your heart. Maybe Steve wasnāt the same boy you had grown up with. Maybe his middle school fame had gone to his head more than you thought it would. More than you hoped it would.
You had just freed another dried worm from its place on the sidewalk when you saw it. A pair of Nikes in front of you. Steve Harringtonās pair of Nikes. He hadnāt gone with the others. It was like he was rooted to the spot. You placed the worm into the depths of the grass, tilting your head to look up at the boy towering over you.
āScrew you, Steve,ā you spoke harshly, doing your best to let venom lace your words despite the shake in your voice. Steve didnāt say anything back. He just crouched down in front of you, gently picking up the last worm from the sidewalk. He copied what you had done, parting the grass to place the worm close to the damp earth below. Steve stood up then, walking back to the group that had now passed you, heading towards the school. They hadnāt even noticed he was gone.Ā
Steve rejoined them, sticking to the back of the group to not draw attention to his momentary absence. He looked back at you then, finding you with your head turned over your shoulder, already gazing at him with confusion plastered across your face. He shot you a soft smile, one that he had typically reserved just for you. It only lasted a moment, but for that moment you were more perplexed than before.
In that smile was Steve. The Steve. The one that had plaid wallpaper in his room and hand-drawn pictures of cars taped to the walls (some that you had drawn for him). He was the boy who had a slew of green army men sitting on his window sill, the same ones that he had given you. They sat pointing towards the street out front, and never ever at you. They protected both of your rooms. The soldiers protected them from monsters, wizards, ghosts, and disappointed parents. At that moment, Steve was the boy next door who left messages taped to his window for you to see. The boy who stayed a few paces behind your bike after school to make sure you got home safely. He was the boy who promised to love you always before placing a peck on your lips when you were both five. He was the boy you knew, not the one who humiliated you in front of his friends.Ā
But the moment ended. The smile dropped from Steveās face as quickly as it had appeared. He turned his head back around, putting more and more distance between the two of you. You watched him for a moment longer until you finally managed to tear your gaze from his retreating figure. You moved then, leaning over the grass to see the worm that Steve had placed there, worried that he left it too high up. Most of the worms were dead long before you got there, you knew that, but it didnāt stop you from trying to help them. All the worms in the grass were lifeless and unmoving despite your efforts. All except one. It was the worm Steve had placed there.
You jumped into action then, using your fingers to dig a hole in the dirt. As quickly as you could, you placed the worm into the hole, covering it with the fresh soil. Its tail poked out just a bit and you watched with bated breath as it slowly retracted, moving deeper into the ground below. You glanced up at the sidewalk again, expecting to still see Steve in the distance, but he was gone. Over the hill and out of your eye line, just like the worm.Ā
āDonāt call me that,ā you bit through gritted teeth and Steve just laughed. His stupid, obnoxious, loud laugh. The one that warned you that danger was near anytime you heard it in the hallway in high school.Ā
āWould you prefer I call you something else?ā Steve pondered dramatically, bringing a finger to his lip and glancing up as if he were trying to remember something. āMaybe worm-ā Steve began, a look of anger more prominent on your face now.
āFuck you, Steve,ā you cut him off before he could finish his taunt. He was about to say something else, no doubt another snarky comment that you could definitely afford to miss. It was about to spring from his lips when Steve was met with the sound of your window slamming shut. You locked it too, pulling the curtains closed and retreating to your bed, no longer in the mood to read. Steve stared at the purple curtains now blocking his view of you. Oh, how he hated that specific shade, knowing that they were the only thing keeping him from gazing at you.Ā
Steve closed his window too, locking it the same as you had. But he kept his curtains open, hoping to maybe catch a glimpse of you later. The hand-drawn cars that once lined his walls were replaced by movie posters, ones he had gotten for free from work. He still had the army men littered along the window sill though. Most of them had been knocked over on their sides and Steve never bothered to pick them back up. They pointed at your room now, though Steve never intended for them to do so, unlike you who had purposefully aimed your soldiers at Steveās window no more than a few days after Wormageddon.
Steve sat back on his bed, laying down and placing his arms under his head. Heād made you mad. Gotten you all riled up, just as he had planned from the second you opened your mouth. So why did he not feel better right now? Why did his stomach hurt and his heart refused to rest? This battle was over. The war waged on but this was still a victory worth noting in the imaginary books. He hadnāt gotten the final word but he still won nonetheless. Isnāt that what he was supposed to do? He was a Harrington after all, and Harringtons were winners. Right?Ā
But I knew youād linger like a tattoo kiss
The sun crept along the horizon, unwilling to give in to the moon just yet. Orange and pink illuminated your room through the open curtains. You sat at your vanity, applying a final layer of gloss to your lips before smacking them together. Unbeknownst to you, Steve had been watching you through the window. He admired the effort you took while getting ready, although he knew you didnāt need it. Steve would never admit it, heād repressed it for far too long, but he thought you were the most beautiful girl heād ever seen.Ā
You turned towards your closet, digging through it to find a pair of shoes that matched your outfit. Steve couldnāt help the clawing desire to know what you were getting ready for. There werenāt any parties that he knew of that night. Maybe you were hanging out with Nancy and Robin. He couldnāt imagine why youād need to get dressed up for that though. Steve wished your window was open. He would lean on his window sill, asking about your plans for the evening. Heād say it in that snarky Steve Harrington way. The way he knew would elicit an eye roll in response. But maybe youād give in and tell him. Maybe youād invite him to go with you. Or maybe Steve was letting fantasy mix with reality.
A car horn sounded from outside, pulling Steve from his thoughts with a jump. He didnāt realize he was still standing at his window staring at you. At least he hadnāt until you rushed to your window, trying to get a glimpse of the vehicle out front. Your eyes locked with Steveās then and you couldāve sworn you saw him blush. You brushed it off, refocusing on why you had come to the window in the first place. Parked on the street in front of your house sat a van. A beat-up, rusty, falling apart at the seams, van. Steveās gaze followed yours, also noticing the van below. A van he was more than familiar with at this point.Ā
You bent over, pulling on your shoes as quickly as you could before rushing out of your room and down the stairs. Steve jumped into action then, doing the same from within his own house. He burst out the front door just in time to see you grabbing for the handle of the vanās passenger side door. Steve peered through the windshield getting a glance of the unruly curls that rested on Eddie Munsonās head. You hopped into the van and Eddie looked up, seeing Steve cut through his yard and head towards the van. You fastened your seatbelt and looked up, also catching sight of the boy rapidly approaching you.
āEddie, please drive. Like right now,ā you turned to the boy next to you. Your voice came out shaky and desperate. Definitely not the commanding tone youād hoped for.
āSorry, princess. Gotta see what the hair is so adamantly chasing us for,ā Eddie shrugged and you groaned, throwing your head back. Unfortunately that only made Eddie laugh at you.
āIf you leave right now, Iāll do anything you ask for the rest of the night,ā you pleaded, clasping your hands together to beg.
āAs tempting as that sounds, itās a bit too late,ā Eddie points to the window behind you. You turn, seeing Steve standing next to your window, hand raised in a wave. Eddie leaned over, arm reaching across your lap to crank the window down, because he knew damn well that you wouldnāt do it. Not when Steve was standing on the other side at least.
āYouāre like a goddamn jumpscare. I hope you know that Harrington,ā you spoke, folding your arms over your chest as Eddie retreated back to his side of the van. He could identify the hint of jealousy on Steveās face all too well. It was the same look Steve wore anytime a guy got too close to you or made you smile a bit wider than normal. Eddie was well aware of Steveās complicated feelings for you, even though Steve sure as hell wasnāt.
āWhatcha up to? I thought you were staying home tonight?ā Steve asked Eddie, resting his hands against the vanās door. He was close to you, too close. You leaned back in your seat, putting more space between the two of you.
āWell, now Iām not,ā Eddie shot Steve a cheeky smile and Steve just blinked in response. āOk fine,ā Eddie gave in, unraveling under Steveās stare. He hated lying to Steve, especially now that theyād gotten closer. āWeāre going to see some band play at The Hideout. Weāve had these plans for weeks. I lied about staying home,ā Eddie rushed out and your mouth dropped in shock.
āOne look into Harringtonās sparkly eyes and you're spilling your guts? Pathetic,ā you groaned from your seat. Eddie rolled his eyes, focusing them back onto Steve.
āYou think my eyes are sparkly?ā Steve quipped, a smirk growing on his lips. You heard Eddie laugh beside you and you couldnāt help the scowl that formed on your face.
āGet over yourself, Steve,ā you moved your hand over the window crank, threatening to roll up the window, but Steve stopped you.
āWait! I wanna come with,ā he spoke quickly, eyes darting back and forth between you and Eddie. You couldnāt help the laugh that formed in your throat. āWhatās so funny?ā Steve glared at you then.
āWell, for one, you hate metal music,ā you began and Steve scoffed.
āSo do you,ā Steve tried to retaliate, but the smirk on your lips told him he was fighting a losing battle.
āSure, Iām not the biggest metal fan, but I like it enough and I love the energy of the crowd. Plus Eddie and I have been doing this for years. It doesnāt even matter, youāre not coming with us so you might as well give up now,ā you spoke, lifting your hand in a sarcastic wave goodbye.
āGood thing itās not up to you then. Itās Eddieās van. He gets to decide,ā your head snapped in Eddieās direction then. You glared at him and focused as hard as you could. When you were younger, you and Eddie were convinced that youād be able to communicate with each other telepathically if you tried hard enough. It never worked of course, but it never hurt to try. Eddie understood you better than anyone. He became your number-one confidant since the day you met. Surely he could pick up on your brain waves begging him to bar Steve from your plans.
Eddie headed towards the band room at Hawkins Middle with his guitar case swinging in his hand. He was early, intending to warm up on his own before the rest of Corroded Coffin got there for band practice. Eddie flicked on the lights, expecting the room to be empty. But it wasnāt. You were there, in the corner of the room, tucked between some music stands. Youād been curled into a ball and looked up when the fluorescent lights came on, illuminating your hidden figure. There were tears streaked across your face after a particularly brutal day of taunts from Tommy and Steve. Eddie set his guitar down and moved towards you slowly.
āAre you okay?ā he asked in a quiet voice, hesitantly approaching. You remained silent, rising from your spot on the ground and wiping away your tears with your sweater sleeve. āIām Eddie,ā he spoke again, extending his hand for you to shake when he got close enough. You told him your name but didnāt meet his hand with yours, not yet.
āBut everyone calls me Baby,ā your voice was hoarse from crying but Eddie heard you loud and clear. He was an eighth grader but even heād heard about the poor sixth grader that the popular kids had been calling Baby. It had moved beyond just them though. All of your classmates, teachers, and neighbors had adopted the name for you.Ā
āWell, I wonāt call you that, not if youāre not comfortable with it,ā Eddie reassured you. He had been victimized plenty by the popular kids. He understood what it felt like, which is why he was shocked when you shook your head. His hand fell back to his side.
āNo, itās ok. Iāve been telling people to call me Baby to help reclaim it, I guess. It took Marissa the librarian forever but sheās finally gotten used to it. My parents still slip up, but thatās to be expected,ā you shrugged. What you didnāt tell Eddie was that it still hurt when the name spilled from Steveās lips. You werenāt sure why it did. But the more you were called Baby by everyone else, the more desensitized you hoped to become to it.
āReclaim the name?ā Eddie asked, eyebrows furrowed. You nodded, suddenly unsure what the boy in front of you thought. āThatās pretty metal,ā a smile stretched his lips and his hand shot back up between you, beckoning for yours to join it. āItās nice to meet you, Baby.ā
āYou too, Eddie,ā you mirrored his smile, finally placing your small hand in his. Eddieās calloused fingers enclosed around the back of your palm and two became one. You were inseparable. Inseparable in everything except for the reoccurring nightmare scenario that kept popping up in your life. Youād been dragged in early on, being one of the last people to see Barb before she went missing. Youād caught a glimpse of her through your window, sitting on the diving board above Steveās pool, when suddenly she was gone. You joined Jonathan and Nancy in their quest to find her and kill the thing that took her. It sucked to keep Eddie out of that part of your life, but it was for his own good. Or at least it was until this past spring when Chrissy Cunningham became Vecnaās first victim right before the poor boyās eyes. Then you told him everything. Your two worlds fully merged, and you and Eddie became totally and fully inseparable.
Your glare bore into Eddieās and you thought you had gotten through to him. You were wrong.
āAlright Harrington, hop in. Quickly though, I donāt want to miss the opening act,ā Eddie conceded, turning to face his gaze towards the road ahead. He could feel you burning holes into him with your eyes. You rolled the window up as Steve opened the van's back door.Ā
āWeāre so working on the telepathy thing again. Evidently, youāre in desperate need of a refresher,ā you grumbled and Eddie chuckled at how mad you were at the addition of Steve to your plans. Steve closed the van door, lounging in one of the bean bags Eddie kept in the back. After what felt like the longest ride of being tossed around the back of Eddieās van, Steve was never more thankful to see The Hideout come into view. The three of you filed out of the van as the sound of metal music filtered through the barās closed doors. Much to Eddieās dismay the opener had already started their set. It smelled like cheap beer and cigarette smoke, causing Steve to wrinkle his nose.
āGo get us some drinks from the bar. Baby and I will get us a spot up near the front,ā Eddie handed Steve a few dollar bills, enough to cover both your drink and his own. You and Steve might hate each other, but youād been around each other in enough alcohol-fueled group settings to know each otherās drink orders. Steve beelined towards the bar, yelling over the music to order your Dirty Shirley with extra cherries, Eddieās Rum and Coke, and his own Long Island iced tea.
He spotted you and Eddie pushing through the crowd. You were in front of Eddie, his forearm thrown across the front of your shoulders to keep you close. The two of you stopped not far from the stage. You leaned up to say something in Eddieās ear, your back flush with his chest, and Steve felt a rush of jealousy run through him. Eddie had told him countless times that the two of you were just friends. That the kisses heād once shared with you while high were just meaningless, drug-fueled, pecks on the lips. That was a lie of course, but Eddie definitely wasnāt going to tell Steve about the way you moaned against his lips until the two of you sobered up enough to feel embarrassed and swore to never speak of it again. Sometimes Steve needed to be lied to about certain things, mainly so Eddie wasnāt on the receiving end of Steveās right hook.
The bartender placed the drinks in front of Steve in exchange for the wad of cash slapped on the counter. Steve grabbed all three glasses and began his trek through the tightly packed crowd. Heād gotten really good at holding a bunch of stuff in his hands at once during his brief stint at Scoops. Steve made it up to you and Eddie, passing the drinks to each of you. The three of you watched the opening bandās set, dancing as much as you could with drinks in your hands and a packed crowd.
By the time the openerās set was over you had sipped enough of your drink to expose one of the cherries in your glass. Steve couldnāt help the way his mouth gaped as he watched you fish the cherry out with your finger, popping the morsel in your mouth and pulling it from the stem with your teeth. Eddie eyed the boy next to him, amused not only by Steveās aroused reaction to such a simple thing but also by your complete obliviousness to said reaction. Despite the lack of music coming from the stage as you waited for the headlining band to come on, Eddie still had to shout over the buzz of the crowd.
āShow Stevie the thing,ā Eddie gestured towards the cherry stem between your fingers. You shook your head in protest, but Eddie gave you his best puppy dog eyes and you were instantly beat. You rolled your eyes, placed the cherry stem on your tongue, and closed your lips. Eddie brought his arm up, glancing back and forth between you and his watch. Steve was baffled by the coordinated performance that the two of you were putting on in front of him. After a few seconds, your mouth popped back open. You plucked the cherry stem from between your teeth and held it up for Steve to see.
āSeven seconds! That might be your personal best,ā Eddie exclaimed while Steve looked closely at the stem. It was tied in a knot. He took it from between your fingers and was about to ask how you did it when the band came on stage. Steveās hand trailed down to his side, tucking the tied cherry stem into his pocket. He wasnāt sure why, but throwing it away felt wrong for some reason.
The band was really good, especially the lead singer. He was only a few years older than you and he had gorgeous, blonde hair that flowed down to his shoulders. Steve had scoffed when the singer winked at you during their set, but you couldnāt hear the sound over the music. The three of you had a surprisingly good time together, although it's pretty hard to fight with such loud music blaring throughout the room. Eddie and Steve were tasked with finding a table after the band left the stage and you got stuck with grabbing everyone new drinks.Ā
āThat was actually really fun. How often do you guys do this?ā Steve asked, his pants getting stuck to cheap faux leather as he slid into a booth opposite Eddie.Ā
āOnce every month or so. It depends on which bands are playing,ā Steve was listening to Eddie or at least he was at first. His eyes had been scanning the bar, trying to find you. When he finally did, his expression hardened. You leaned with your elbow against the bar, waiting for the bartender to come back with the drinks, but you werenāt alone. The lead singer of the headlining band was beside you. He was smiling at you, and even worse for Steve, you were smiling back. Eddie noticed the change in Steveās demeanor, the jealousy that now filled the hazel of his eyes. He tracked Steveās gaze across the crowded bar, landing on you.Ā
Eddie was impressed. Heād seen you bag your fair share of hot guys after a show at The Hideout, but never had you managed to get with the lead singer of the headlining band. Steve, on the other hand, was not impressed. He was livid. It didnāt help that the lead singer had just placed his hands on your hips, pulling you flush against him as he leaned in close to whisper something in your ear. Steve quickly slid out of the booth, stomping his way through the crowd of people, heading towards you. Eddie winced, knowing he should chase after the boy, but slightly curious to see what would happen if he didnāt. Steve pushed through the bodies surrounding him, stopping just in front of where you stood against the bar.
āWhat's taking you so long with the drinks?ā He called out and your head shot up at the sound of his voice. The smile that had grown on your lips quickly faded at the sight of Steve. The singer, Corey, looked up from where he had just started to kiss your neck. He didnāt move his hands from your hips despite Steveās pointed glances.Ā
āHey man, youāre kind of interrupting something right now. If you want a drink then ask the bartender or whatever,ā Corey moved to face you again, but Steve wasnāt done.
āHey man,ā Steve mocked Coreyās words. āYou need to take your hands off of her right now,ā your brow furrowed in anger while Corey filled with confusion.
āSorry dude, didnāt realize she was your girl,ā Corey assumed based on Steveās comment and began to move his hands, but you stopped him.
āIām not, I swear. I barely even know that guy,ā Steve scoffed at that and you shot him a glare. Coreyās eyes flitted back and forth between you and Steve. He looked more confused than ever, almost painfully so.Ā
āIām way too high for this. You have her, man. It's not worth the fight,ā Corey held up his hands in defense. Eddie had just worked his way through the sea of people in time to see Corey back away from you, scan the crowd, and head towards some pretty redhead across the room. Steve looked triumphant as he turned his gaze back to you. Eddie thought you looked like you were about to go ballistic. Heād never seen you that mad before in his entire life. You looked even angrier now than you had when Eddie purposefully put gum in your hair and it got stuck so badly that you had to give yourself bangs to get rid of it. Eddie was about two seconds from sprinting out of the building to save himself from being a witness to what was sure to be Steveās murder when the bartender, Dave, called out from behind you.
āHereās that Long Island for you, Baby,ā you spun around, revealing the Rum and Coke and Dirty Shirley that sat on the counter behind you. You thanked Dave, giving him a good tip, before turning back to Steve. Because even in your fury, you could still be nice to the waitstaff. You picked up the Long Island, marched towards Steve, and slammed the drink directly into his chest.Ā
āSince you wanted it so fucking bad,ā you pushed past him, not caring about the way the liquid sloshed over the lip of the glass, coating your hand and Steveās shirt. You moved towards the exit, slamming the door open into the moonlit darkness outside. Steve took a second to process what just happened. He placed the remainder of his drink back on the counter before following in your path. Eddie groaned, grabbing his now abandoned drink from the bar and downing it. He grabbed your drink from beside his, knowing youād need it when this was over, and followed Steve. You had made it to Eddieās van and tugged on the door handle, cursing the long-haired boy for actually locking it for once.
āWhat the hell was that?ā Steve called out from across the parking lot with his arms held wide. He was stalking towards you at a furious pace. You were so pissed that you didnāt even notice your feet dragging you forward to meet him in the middle.
āWhere the fuck do you get off?ā you asked in response instead of answering his question. Steve stopped when the tips of his shoes touched yours, scrunched faces mere inches from each other. āFirst you invite yourself along to Eddie and Iās thing and then you ruin my chances with the very hot lead singer of the band. You did that for what, huh? Shits and giggles? I donāt give a shit who you are Harrington, thatās too fucking far,ā you yelled, rage boiling beneath your hot skin.Ā
āHe wasnāt that hot,ā Steve scoffed, crossing his arms over his chest. Your eyes widened. Eddie, who had just made it out to the parking lot, was surprised there wasnāt steam shooting out of your ears at this point.
āIs that the only thing you fucking heard from what I just said?ā you brought your hands to your forehead in exasperation. āYouāre such an asshole! I thought it would end when we graduated. Like youād grow up a bit after graduation day. Hell, Robin said youād matured, changed, and left the King Steve shtick behind. Eddie is one of your best friends now, the boy you taunted for years. So what is it about me, huh? Why are you suddenly too golden-hearted to bully everyone else but you never stopped fucking with me?ā you had gotten close to Steve, not that you noticed through your tunneled vision of anger. Your heavy breaths fanned across Steveās lips as you awaited his response.
āI-ā Steve opened his mouth to respond and then quickly shut it. He didnāt know. Well maybe he did know, somewhere deep down, but it wasnāt something he could say to you now. Not in The Hideoutās parking lot where a crowd had started growing around you. Steve stepped back, creating the space between you that you desperately lacked at the moment.
āThatās what I thought,ā you stepped back too, turning to walk towards Eddie. You quickly stopped, facing Steve once more. āDo me a favor, find some other girl to lurk around for a while. It's bad enough that you live next door. I really donāt need you following me wherever I go like some fucking creep,ā you spun on your heels again, grabbing the drink from Eddieās outstretched hand and throwing it back like it was fruit juice.Ā
Eddie unlocked the van and you slid inside, slamming the door behind you. Eddieās eyes met Steveās with a grimace. Eddie looked at you in the van and then back to Steve. Steve got the message; Eddie couldnāt take you both home together. Maybe Steve was the one with telepathy instead. Eddieās remorseful eyes searched Steve from across the lot. Steve conceded, gesturing for Eddie to take you. He was the one that fucked up anyway. If anything he deserved to be the one that had to call a cab. Eddie shot Steve a tight-lipped smile before hopping into his van and driving off. Steve watched the vanās taillights as Eddie rolled through a stop sign, speeding off into the night.
The light in your room was off when the cab finally dropped Steve off at home. He wasnāt surprised, expecting that youād be at Eddie's trailer, erasing the night from your thoughts with a shared joint. Steve trudged up the stairs, opening and closing his door softly behind him so he didnāt wake his parents. Theyād be gone for another business trip in the morning, leaving one less thing for him to worry about tomorrow. Steveās window was still open from earlier, allowing the cool night air to seep in. He laid back on his bed, thoughts racing in the silence. And thatās when he heard it. A soft sob, then a sniffle. A deep breath, then another sob.
Steve sat up, his gaze aimed in the direction of the sound. His eyes landed on you, sitting on the floor of your darkened room with your back against your bed. Your window was cracked open, the way you normally kept it at night, allowing the birds to wake you with their songs in the morning. Steve stood, moving towards the window. You couldnāt see him from this angle, not that you would have been able to regardless with the tears clouding your vision. Steve frowned. An ache in his chest, the same one heād felt whenever he heard you cry, flourished within him. He wanted to comfort you. To wrap an arm around you and let cry into his chest. To tell you it would be okay and ask whoās ass he needed to kick. But he couldnāt. You werenāt friends. You hated him. And itās not like he could kick his own ass.Ā
He didnāt realize, didnāt even feel it, but a tear slipped down his cheek, matching the flood that crowded yours. Steve lifted his hands to rest on the window, leaning against it as his brows furrowed over the broken look on your face. He pushed down, shutting the window softly, locking it, and closing the curtains. He couldnāt listen to you cry anymore. He remembered what you said, and he didnāt want to linger. The tear rolled off Steveās chin, drowning a little unsuspecting green soldier on the window sill below. Steve moved away from the window and laid back on his bed. He felt around his pants pocket and fished out the knotted cherry stem. Steveās eyes roamed over it for too long before he set it aside on his nightstand and closed his eyes. He couldn't sleep that night, no matter how hard tried. In the quiet dark of his room, Steve swore he could still hear your muffled cries.Ā Ā Ā Ā
Drunk under a street light
Black and white flickered from the TV screen, illuminating the dark room that you lounged in. You were lazing on the couch, mindlessly picking at the bowl of popcorn in your lap. The movie playing across the room did nothing to pull your unfocused stare from the coffee table in front of you. It wasnāt until you received a light kick to the thigh that you could finally shifted your eyes away.
āOkay, ouch,ā you glared at Robin who was lying across the couch beside you, feet practically draped across your lap. She sat up, digging her hand into the bowl of popcorn. Her perfume scent lingered in the air around you even after she pulled back. It was sweet and light like she had just finished baking a batch of sugar cookies.
āYouāve been begging me to watch Casablanca with you for months and youāre not even paying attention to it now that I actually am,ā she lifted her hand towards the screen before bringing her handful of popcorn to her lips. It's true. You had been dying to get someone to watch Casablanca with you for ages. Eddie watched it once and then refused to do it again after he ended up crying at the ending. Rick Blaineās selfless act of giving up his one true love to give her a better life brought tears to the cold-hearted boyās eyes. He made you promise not to tell anyone, especially Dustin.Ā
āSorry Rob, Iāve just got a lot on my mind,ā you apologized, trying your best to pay attention to the movie again. Youād been zoned out for the entire first half of the movie, not that it mattered. You knew exactly what was happening on screen, given that youād seen the movie a million times. It got to a point where Steve started keeping a copy under the counter at Family Video so there was always one available when you came in.
āAre you thinking about Steve?ā Robin asked, her voice overpowering Ingrid Bergmanās as Ilsa confessed why she left Rick alone in Paris. Your head snapped towards the girl beside you and you could see the faint smirk growing on her lips.
āWhy would I be thinking about Steve?ā you answered her question with your own. The smirk fell from her lips then and she rolled her eyes. Robin sat up, pressing pause on the remote.
āBecause he was totally jealous and caused some huge blowout fight between the two of you. And when I say huge I mean huge. Itās been over a week and you still wonāt even acknowledge that he exists,ā Robin explained, turning to face you better. You sighed and faced her too. You tried to avoid talking about Steve with Robin. Ever since they became friends it seemed too weird to talk shit about him in front of her.
āFirst of all, Steve definitely wasnāt jealous. Heās just a menace that loves to torment me,ā Robin snorted a laugh but didnāt interrupt, allowing you to continue. āSecond, Steve and I arenāt friends so me not talking to him for a week really isnāt that big of a deal,ā Robin shrugged at that, seeing your point. āAnd third, how the hell do you know about all of this?ā a guilty look spread across Robinās face and you quickly realized the answer to your question. āEddieās got a big mouth,ā Robin nodded in agreement at your words.Ā
āI wouldāve figured it out regardless. Steveās been moping around for days. Heās really beating himself up over the whole thing,ā you chuckled and Robin shot you a confused glare.
āWhat? I find it hard to believe that Steve Harrington even remotely cares about anything that has to do with me. Well unless it has to do with making my life a living hell,ā you leaned back again, digging your hand into the popcorn bowl once more. Robin just stared at you, obviously baffled by something.Ā
āHas it ever occurred to you that maybe somewhere in Steveās caveman brain all this ātormentā is actually his way of expressing that he likes you?ā Robin asked and repositioned the blanket that covered her lap. You stopped mid-chew, considering Robinās words. You swallowed hard, sitting up and placing the popcorn bowl down on the couch between you.
āSo what, Steve pulls my pigtails on the playground and itās all okay just because he likes me? Thatās such a toxic ideology, Rob. Not only that, but the suggestion that Steve actually likes me is insane. I mean have you heard the worm story?ā you felt defensive, as if you were being attacked even though you weren't. You couldnāt understand why your heart wouldnāt stop racing at the thought of Steve liking you.
āOf course, Iāve heard the goddamn worm story,ā Robin threw her hands in the air, nearly knocking over the popcorn in the process. āAnd I didnāt say that it was a healthy way of expressing his feelings. It just might be the only way he knows how. Itās not like his parents are great role models in teaching him about love and stuff,ā a quiet fell over the room while your head raced at Robinās words. Youād been so wrapped up in your feud with Steve that you hadnāt taken the time to consider his life outside of you.Ā
You knew Steveās parents were pretty absent based on the lack of cars in the driveway. And it was well known across town that Mr. Harrington was an asshole, no need to grow up next door to figure that out. Steve adored his dad when he was younger, and talked about how he wanted to be just like him. But you had heard the fights that seeped through the open windows in the years that followed. The disappointment that filled Mr. Harringtonās face when he entered Steveās bedroom and saw the movie posters lining the walls. You wondered then what Steveās parents thought of his decision to forgo college. Whether they argued with his choice, fought with him to take a chance to change his future, or if they just accepted it, not expecting much else from their disappointing son.
āI hadnāt thought about that,ā Robin studied your face as you spoke. You looked lost, like you were questioning your past with Steve. After a moment the hint of a smile graced your lips and Robin furrowed her brow. āStill doesnāt mean he likes me,ā you quirked as Robin sat up, grabbing another handful of popcorn.Ā
āOh whatever,ā she launched her fistful of popcorn at you, hitting your face with the popped kernels before they fell to your lap. You retaliated, throwing popcorn back at her. The popcorn fight quickly ended when Robin picked up the bowl, dumping the rest of its contents over your head. The two of you fell into a fit of laughter while you tried, and failed, to pick the popcorn kernels from your hair. Eventually, you gave up, resting your head on Robinās shoulder, the crunch of the popcorn sounding off as you did. Her shoulder was bony, uncomfortably stabbing your cheek with each delicate press against it, but you didnāt mind. Neither of you was very touchy-feely with each other, though you were never sure why, so it was nice to have a rare moment of intimacy. It granted you a deeper understanding of one another and a peak into the mysterious ways that each of your brains worked.
āGo to a party with me tonight?ā Robin asked softly, not quite ready to leave the comfortable quiet just yet. You kept your head still on her shoulder and closed your eyes, inhaling sharply.
āSince when do you actively attend parties?ā you questioned and Robinās shoulder shook beneath you as she let out a gentle laugh. It was a comforting sound, like waves at the beach or rain on the pavement. Thatās what Robin was to you. A comfort. Sure, Eddie was your best friend and youād known him longer, but Robin understood you in a way that he didnāt. She controlled your chaos and balanced it with ease and truth. Robin matched your energy, knew what was best for you, and made you feel heard.
āSince Vickie asked me to go,ā Robin winced out the words, anticipating your shift away from her side. Just as Robin thought, you lifted your head, turning to face her.
āSo youāre not inviting me to go to a party, youāre inviting me to Third Wheel all night?ā you raised your brow, eyes pouring into the girl beside you. Robin winced, shrinking into her spot on the couch. āAlright, Iāll go. Got nothing better to do anyway,ā Robin cheered triumphantly at your concession, standing to go to your room and start getting ready together. You stopped her, gesturing to the popcorn that littered the couch and floor. She groaned, reluctantly helping you clean up the mess she made.
Youād walked to the party, arriving after everything was already in full swing. The sticky air reeked of weed and cheap booze as you pushed your way through the front door. It was sweltering inside the house. Sweaty bodies pressed themselves closely together on the dance floor, sipping on whatever deadly concoction resided in the punch bowl. Robin made a beeline for Vickie as soon as she walked through the door. There were familiar faces, people you knew from high school and whatnot, but no one you particularly fancied talking to. That is until you saw a mop of brown curls approaching with a black lunch box in his hands.
āI didnāt know you were gonna be here,ā you called out over the boombox that was blaring music throughout the room. Eddie wrapped an arm around your shoulder, pulling you to walk along with him. He guided you to the kitchen, stopping in front of a countertop littered with booze. You weighed your drink options, eventually pouring some vodka and Sprite into a solo cup, disappointed at the lack of cherry grenadine. You held up a bottle of rum pointed in Eddieās direction, but he shook his head.
āStrictly business tonight sweetheart,ā Eddie patted the lunchbox in his hands. You nodded in understanding, bringing your cup to your lips. āWhereās Buckley?ā he asked, suddenly noticing the missing girl that he was sure dragged you here. You didnāt even have to speak, just pointing your finger to where Robin danced with Vickie across the room. Her hair was already a mess and her cheeks were flushed bright pink. You were about to say something else, keep your conversation with Eddie going, when he received a tap on his shoulder. It was some jock looking to make a deal. Eddie gave your hand a quick squeeze in place of goodbye and led the guy to the back of the house.
So there you were, standing alone in a crowded kitchen, regretting your decision to come in the first place. If only Nancy or Jonathan were there to keep you company, too bad they were both off at their respective colleges. Hell, you might even take Steveās companionship at this point, because the longer you leaned against this countertop, the more boxed in you felt. What you didnāt know was that Steve was there. He thought it would be a good way to get his mind off your fight, but as he stood in the corner of this too-hot house, sipping a lukewarm beer, and listening to his old basketball teammate drone on and on about how they shouldāve won the championship game their senior year, Steve realized he was wrong.
It especially didnāt help when his eyes scanned the room and somehow landed on you. You were alone, searching the room, presumably for a familiar face, when he spotted you. Luckily for Steve, you remained oblivious to his watchful gaze, giving him some time to study you since he felt like he hadnāt been able to in ages. He considered going over to you, to keep you company, but before he could even take a step, someone else approached you first. Your face dropped to a scowl at the sight of the freckled boy who now stood in front of you.
āWhatās wrong Baby? Not happy to see me?ā Tommy asked, a devilish grin hiding his lips. Steve was rooted to the spot, unable to move. He wanted to march over to you, drag you away from the douchebag before you, but he couldnāt will his legs to trudge across the congested room. He was never good at standing up for you, especially not to Tommy.Ā
āIs anyone ever happy to see you?ā you asked, crossing your arms and keeping a close grip on your cup. Tommy looked you up and down, hungry eyes boring into your skin. Suddenly you wished you brought a sweater to cover your bare shoulders. Steve still watched you from afar, his stomach turning at the desire that lingered in Tommyās expression.
āThere are plenty of girls around here that love when I show up,ā Tommy grinned, leaning in closer. He reminded you of a shark with his teeth bared, waiting for a lowly seal to stumble into his pathway. āI could show you why if you come upstairs with me,ā his lips came dangerously close to your ear, muffling the music that rattled the room.Ā
āIāll pass,ā you grimaced at his offer. Tommyās grin faltered and you brought your cup to your lips with a shrug, trying not to look too smug at your denial of his advances. That must have been what set Tommy over the edge. He reached up, slapping the cup from your hand, ignoring the liquid that splashed over you both. His face leaned in close as his arms caged you against the counter.Ā
āFuck you,ā he spat, his face close to yours. āYouāre just some weirdo bitch anyway,ā you were scared at that point, terrified even, but you remained calm. Showing your fear would be the worst thing to do. Steveās heart raced in his chest as he watched Tommy corner you. He took a step forward, moving in your direction.
āA weirdo bitch that wonāt fuck you,ā you fired back at Tommy and his face turned red with fury. Maybe poking the bear wasnāt a good idea. Suddenly someone knocked Tommy to the side, freeing you from him. You looked up, seeing a flash of red hair and someone in a striped shirt. Vickie and Robin.Ā
āWoah man, we were spinning around and kinda lost control. Didnāt even see you there,ā Robin leaned down to where Tommy now sat on the floor. She shot you a wink when he wasnāt looking. Vickie offered him a hand, but he brushed her off, standing on his own. He looked around, catching the glances of some of the partygoers, and stomped off, too embarrassed to continue trying to pursue you. Steve had made it about halfway through the crowded living room when Robin and Vickie took down Tommy in some sort of weird spin attack. He stood there now, watching as they checked over you. āYou alright?ā Robin asked you while Vickie inspected you for any bruises or blemishes from Tommy.
āYeah, Iām all good. Think Iām just gonna go actually,ā you looked down at your shirt, taking inventory of how damp it was from your spilled drink.Ā
āWeāll go with you,ā Vickie spoke up, taking hold of your arm as if she would guide you out. You shook your head, sliding her hand down to yours and giving it a gentle squeeze before letting go.Ā
āNo, you guys stay and have fun. Iām gonna try and hitch a ride. Iāve gotta know someone around here thatās planning on leaving soon,ā you had no intentions of actually getting a ride from someone. But you knew Robin would never let you go if she knew you were going to walk home alone and you just needed to get out of there. You would ask Eddie, but you knew he needed the money heād make from selling tonight so you didnāt want to bother him.Ā
āOkay,ā Robin nodded, granting you permission to leave. You gave her and Vickie a two-finger salute and made your way to the door. āNo rides home from anyone on the basketball team. Past, present, or future. I swear all of those guys are creeps,ā Robin called after you, turning a few heads as she did. You chuckled, continuing on to the door.
Steve still stood in the living room, watching the three of you closely. His eyes followed you as you trekked through the crowd to the door. Once you finally made it outside, his gaze shifted back to Robin only to find that she was already looking at him. She motioned with her head to the door, encouraging him to follow after you. So he did. Steve threw away his half-drunk beer and burst through the door. You were already halfway down the block when he got in his car and pulled up next to you.Ā
It was cold outside, especially for early September, a chill lacing the breeze with each gust. It definitely didnāt help that your shirt was still soaked through. You saw the headlights of a car approaching behind you, brushing it off as you shivered and pulled your arms close. It took you a moment to realize that the car hadnāt passed you yet. You turned your head, suddenly facing a maroon BMW with its windows rolled down. A groan escaped your lips, but you still bent down to peer through the window. Steveās car came to a stop, a smile gracing his lips at the sight of your exasperated face.
āYou stalking me now, Harrington?ā Steve let out a chuckle and a gust of wind picked up, making you shiver again.Ā
āYou wish. Come on, get in and Iāll drive us home,ā he studied your face, searching for a sign that youād agree. He couldnāt find one, your body unmoving from your spot on the sidewalk.Ā
āIām perfectly capable of walking. Plus Robin said no rides from anyone on the basketball team,ā you shot him a sly smirk and stood up straight, continuing your walk through the neighborhood. Youād expected Steve to drive off then, leaving you to walk in peace. But he didnāt, his car followed alongside you. āWhat are you doing?ā you asked, stopping again to see Steve through the passenger window.
āIf you wonāt let me drive you home, then Iāll just drive next to you,ā Steve shrugged, looking up at you.
āWhat if I cut through someoneās backyard?ā you asked and Steve shrugged again, a smirk dancing on his lips.
āThen some people are gonna be really pissed to see tire tracks on their lawn,ā he replied and you almost wanted to laugh at his persistence, entertained by Steveās unwillingness to let you be alone. His smile faltered then. āYou and I both know the kind of shit that lurks around Hawkins at night,ā any amusement from before had slipped away. None of you mentioned the Upside Down much now, not after finally defeating Vecna. It was final, the battle that ended the war, destroying the Upside Down for good. You couldnāt help the lingering fear that youād missed something, that one day it would all return. And here, on the sidewalk after some lame party, you realized that Steve shared that fear too.Ā
āOk,ā you said simply, shocking Steve as you pulled on the passenger door handle and slid into the seat next to him. He waited until you buckled up before rolling up the windows and driving off. It was quiet in the car, the lingering tension of all the unspoken words swirling in the air. Steve heard the sound of your teeth chattering and your hands brushing the goosebumps on your arms. He quickly reached into the back, grabbed an old sweatshirt that sat there, and handed it to you. Normally you wouldāve rejected it, your pride too inflated to accept help from Steve in any form. But it was cold, your shirt was wet, and your conversation from earlier with Robin still lingered in the forefront of your mind.Ā
Steve didnāt expect you to take his sweatshirt so easily, replacing his hand on the wheel when he felt the weight of it lift from his palm. You pulled his sweatshirt on, reveling in the warmth it provided. It smelled like hairspray and lavender, a hint of boy mixed with the two. It smelled like Steve. Silence settled over the two of you again and Steve couldnāt stand it anymore.
āIām sorry,ā the words burst from within him, head turning to look at you for a moment. You looked calm and objective like Steve hadnāt even spoken in the first place. āThe whole thing at The Hideout was so stupid. I donāt even know why I did that,ā you looked at him then, expression still neutral. āI guess I just feel like I need to protect you and I took it too far,ā your brow scrunched at that, finally giving Steve an insight into your thoughts.
āProtect me? You and Tommy tormented me for years,ā anger rose in your throat. You hadnāt meant to get mad, still considering what Robin said, but Steveās twisted claim brought it out of you in the way that only he could.
āI know, I know. And Iām sorry about that too. I just- I just wanted to fit in, to be cool. But I realize now that none of that shit ever mattered. I mean, how important was popularity when the one person that I actually cared about couldnāt stand me?ā Steve spoke and the tension in your face dropped. The one person Steve cared about? Was he talking about you? You took a deep breath, thinking over your words when the car came to a stop in front of your driveway.
āSteve,ā you spoke softly, almost a whisper, like the breeze rattling through the trees. āI canāt just forget about all of it because youāve abruptly changed. I canāt just decide to be your friend all of a sudden. You hurt me, for a long time. Hell, you still do,ā Steve winced, wanting to turn back time to when you were five, when nothing bad had happened to you yet and things were much simpler.Ā
āI know,ā Steveās head sunk, his chest aching with each passing second.
āI just,ā you stopped, jumbled thoughts bouncing around your head. āI just think itās easier when we keep ourselves apart. It doesnāt hurt as much that way,ā the streetlights above reflected the swelling tears in your eyes as they threatened to spill. You hadnāt meant to cry, and you surely didnāt want to. Steve understood your sentiments. Being around you only reminded him of how it couldāve been if he hadnāt tried so hard to fit in. If he hadnāt screwed it all up.
āBut maybe we could try. Try to be friends,ā the words surprised Steve as they left his lips. They came out far bolder than he felt capable of being at the moment. āGroup settings, public places. Baby steps, you know?ā Steve tried to stop the hope building in his chest, too worried about the damage it would do if you said no. But you didnāt.Ā
āMaybe,ā you said in a whisper, a tear finally tracking down your cheek. A soft smile slipped over Steveās lips, the same one he wore around you as a kid. The same smile you saw before he traipsed over the hill, leaving you on the sidewalk with the worms. Your lips twitched upwards for a second before you pulled the door handle and exited the car.Ā
The feeling of hope now took full form, blossoming in Steveās chest, filling every crack and crevice between his ribs. He watched you walk up to your front door, still wearing his sweatshirt, slipping inside your house with a small wave in Steveās direction. Steve put the car back in gear, pulling into his driveway next door. He shut the car off and leaned back in his seat, still unable to wipe the smile from his face. Maybe. He could work with maybe.
You drew stars around my scars, but now Iām bleeding
Eddieās van was a mess. Your legs brushed against fast food wrappers while cigarette butts covered the floor, crunching under your sneakers. It smelled like weed and sweat with a hint of the black ice air freshener that you forced him to buy a while ago. It was early afternoon, the sun still high in the sky as Eddie made a right turn out of your neighborhood.
āWhy are we doing this again?ā you asked, shifting to look at Eddie. He had his hair pulled up into a messy bun that you insisted on doing for him. It was a rare and rather unwelcome hairstyle for the metalhead, but it was well warranted for the occasion.Ā
āBecause Buckley wants to learn how to play basketball and Harrington asked for my help,ā Eddie shrugged, approaching a stop sign and making a left. You rolled your eyes, letting out a huff of air from your chest.
āBut you hate basketball,ā you groaned, wondering why Robin would even want to learn how to play in the first place.Ā
āYes, but theyāre my friends and they asked for my help, so my help they shall receive,ā normally you would have laughed at Eddieās goofiness, but the thought of being around Steve loomed over your head. You still hadnāt seen each other since the party, just glimpses through bedroom windows. It was hard to say where either of you stood with each other. Becoming friends seemed like an impossible feat on your part, too stuck in the past to care about the potential future.
āOkay, so why am I included in this? Steve didnāt ask for my help,ā you pulled your feet from the trash-covered floor, finally sick enough of how the garbage touched your ankles. Your feet rested on the seat and you hugged your knees close to your chest. Your head sat atop them, watching Eddie closely with narrow eyes, trying to figure out if this was some scheme to get you near Steve.
āEach team needs two players, Baby. Kind of hard to play a two v. two with only three people,ā you let out another groan and Eddie smirked in response, knowing you couldnāt refute him anymore. He made a sharp right turn, pulling up to the outdoor basketball courts that sat behind the high school. Eddie turned off the engine and tapped your knee. It was his way of telling you to get out of the car and lock your door behind you. The two of you began your walk over and could just barely make out three figures through the holes in the chain link fence that surrounded the basketball courts.
āYou know, I donāt think Iāve ever seen you wear athletic shorts before. I might pass out at the sight of your legs,ā you said to Eddie as the two of you walked through the gate, entering the basketball court. You barely had time to accentuate your comment with a smirk before Eddie leaned in close.
āReel it in, Baby. Best not to flirt with me in front of Harrington. Wouldnāt want to risk him getting jealous again,ā your face grew hot at Eddieās comment, the thought of a jealous Steve stirring something deep in the pit of your stomach, something like desire. Eddie donned a stupid smile as you approached Robin, Steve, and Lucas in the middle of the court.
āWhatās up with you?ā Steve asked, noticing your flustered appearance. Your eyes darted back over to Eddie, who continued to wear the same shit-eating grin as before.
āNothing, just ready to play some basketball,ā you deflected and Steve nodded, covering the basic rules of the game. Lucas was acting as the referee for the match, making it feel much more intense than it should have. Thatās probably why you took it so seriously, covering Robin as if your life depended on it. Steve won the tip-off, sending the ball back to Robin. She caught it and began to dribble towards the basket. She looked like a baby deer trying to walk for the first time as she made her way up the court, nearly smacking the ball away from herself in the process. You used it to your advantage, managing to grab the ball from her, dribbling up the opposite side of the court, and scoring a basket from the three-point line. Steve retaliated after that, shooting his own shot and tying the score. It continued like that for a bit, Eddie and Robin eventually gave up on trying to cover the both of you, which was how you ended up in front of Steve, desperately attempting to block his shot.
āWorried youāre gonna miss?ā you taunted as Steve dribbled in front of you, your back to the basket. A cocky smirk overtook his lips then, bringing the ball up to shoot. It wouldāve gone in too, if you hadnāt smacked it out of the air, stealing it for yourself. You sprinted down the court towards the other basket with Steve hot on your trail. He managed to get in front of you and you turned your back towards him, protecting the ball in the meantime before you could get a clear shot. āCome on, Harrington. I thought you were the team captain back in high school. Figured youād be better than this,ā you knew it was dangerous, teasing him in such a flirty way, but it was all in good fun, right?
āOh, Iāll show you, Baby,ā Steve practically whispered into your ear, his chest pressing against your back. If you werenāt so focused on beating Steve you wouldāve felt the goosebumps that littered your spine. Steveās arms came up to circle you, so you moved, pivoting to take your shot and knocking Steve out of the way in the process. He lost his balance as the ball left your fingertips. You felt Steveās hands find your torso as you watched the ball tip into the basket, dragging you down with him as he fell. Your shirt had ridden up when you made your shot, causing Steveās fingers to brush against your bare skin. It felt like you were falling in slow motion until you finally landed hard on top of Steve, your back flush to his chest.Ā
Pain shot up your sides as Steveās fingernails scraped against the semi-healed scars that resided there. You got up quickly, not taking the time to register your pain, lifting your shirt again to see that the wounds had broken open on both sides. It took Steve a second to get up after hitting the ground so hard. The others rushed toward the two of you, but your eyes landed on Steve, his gaze already honed in on the fresh blood pooling on your skin. His hands came down to his own torso, feeling the scarred flesh that matched yours.Ā
After everything was said and done, the dust settled and Vecna gone for good, there was only the matter of medical care to worry about. Eddie was mostly unscathed, with a few bat bites here and there, but nothing some disinfectant and band-aids couldnāt fix. Lucas was sure to have a swollen eye, cuts, and bruises after fighting Jason. Max was delivered to the hospital where the doctors said she would make a full recovery but might need a pair of glasses. Which just left you and Steve. You had jumped in right after him at Loverās Lake, fighting your way through the water as he was tugged deeper below. When you popped out of the gate mere seconds after him, the bats swarmed you too. It wasnāt until Nancy appeared, oar in hand, that you managed to escape the feeling of the batās teeth sinking into your skin.Ā
The bats had gotten you good, doing just as much damage to you as they had to Steve. When the fight was over and everyone was safely right-side-up, you refused to get medical care, worried that youād be poked and prodded while Owensā doctors tried to study your wounds. Steve refused too, unwilling to be treated unless you were first, not that you knew that.
Robin and Eddie insisted on staying with the two of you to make sure nothing bad happened in the middle of the night. But you said no, pointing out that Eddie needed to stay hidden until his name was cleared. Not to mention that you just wanted to be alone after the strenuousness of the previous few days. You assured Robin and Eddie that your parents would take care of you if anything happened, same with Steve. They reluctantly agreed, dropping you and Steve off in front of your house, leaving the two of you to go your separate ways.
You were about to trudge up the lawn and enter your house, thinking about finally being able to sleep, when you caught sight of Steveās empty driveway. You hadnāt even thought about the fact that his parents were out of town, and he hadnāt mentioned it to Eddie or Robin either. Steve had already started walking towards his house when you called his name.
āYou didnāt say that your parents werenāt home,ā you jogged up to him, wincing at the pain that shot up your side. Steve shrugged, also looking desperate for a decent night of sleep. Steve turned around again, continuing towards his house, leaving you on his lawn. You started following him until he saw you from the corner of his eye and stopped again.
āWhat are you doing?ā the words sounded twisted as they fell from his lips, the same venom you expected from the boy who bullied you for years. Your face grew hot with anger, suddenly wondering if you should just turn back around and retreat to your house.
āYou canāt be alone tonight, not when youāre in such bad shape,ā you crossed your arms over your chest, trying to come across firmly in an attempt to discourage Steve from arguing with you. He simply raised a brow in question.Ā
āI think Iāll be fine,ā he moved to turn on his heel again, to scale his front steps and enter the cold empty house before him. But your arm shot out, landing on his arm and stopping him in his tracks. Steve froze, mind racing at the feel of your skin against his. He couldnāt remember the last time you touched him, given that you usually kept your distance whenever he was near.
āSteve, I canāt leave you alone in good conscience. If you bleed out and die, thatās on me,ā you spoke the words quietly, almost sounding embarrassed to have to say them at all. Steve studied you, eyes roaming over your face. The walls you kept up around him seemingly fell in that moment as he caught sight of the worry hidden deep in your gaze. He nodded then, giving in and leading you to his front door, trying not to look visibly upset when your hand no longer held him.
The house was just as you remembered from when you were a kid. Clean and organized, everything in its designated place. It always frightened you back then, a house so pristine that it didnāt look like anyone could possibly live there. You followed Steve as he ascended the staircase, both of you winded and clutching your wounds when you got to the top. Steve showered in the bathroom attached to his room, offering you a towel and clean clothes before sending you off to the guest bathroom.
The hot water pulsed down on you, blood and grime swirling around the drain at your feet. The water seared your skin with each drop, but you didnāt mind, hoping the sweltering heat would rid you of the horrors youād witnessed within the past few days. The sight of Eddie being tackled to the ground by a swarm of bats. The sound of Steveās screams as his flesh was torn open. Your own wails of pain as the bats did the same to you a few feet away. Maxās broken limbs and unfocused eyes as Lucas held her in his arms on the way to the hospital.
You turned the shower off, unwilling to let your thoughts run rampant anymore. You were careful when drying off, avoiding your wounds to keep blood from soiling Mrs. Harringtonās stark white towels. Sheād be sure to have a fit at the sight of a stain. You dressed quickly, pulling Steveās old shirt and baggy sweatpants on. There wasnāt a first aid kit in the guest bathroom, so you headed back to Steveās room, holding your shirt away from your body to avoid getting blood on it. You knocked gently on Steveās bedroom door and it only took a moment for him to open it for you.Ā
His hair was wet, a towel draped over his bare shoulders. He was shirtless, sweatpants hanging low on his hips as water dripped down his hairy chest. Your eyes lingered there for a moment before trailing to the bandages wrapped around his torso. Steveās eyes followed yours, landing on the gauze tied tightly to his skin.
āI seem to get the shit beat out of me anytime something like this happens,ā he used his towel to gently pat his hair dry. āIāve gotten pretty good at patching myself up,ā Steve shrugged, hanging the towel on the back of his bathroom door.Ā
āCan you do mine?ā you asked quietly, lifting your shirt to reveal your wounds. Steveās gaze flickered down to them, blood from each gash threatening to spill down your sides. His breath caught in his chest at the sight of your exposed skin. It was dumb, just your stomach on display, but it took Steve a second to contain himself. It was nothing he hadnāt seen before, memories of your bare skin seen on the few occasions that you forgot to close your curtains before changing. Steve always looked away, but the flashes of your skin were seared into his brain. He nodded in response to your question, going into the bathroom with you trailing behind him. He told you to sit on the counter, pulling out the first aid kit from the cabinet next to your dangling legs. Steve wiped each wound with an antiseptic wipe, cleaning the area and sopping up the thin blood that surrounded it. His hands were gentle and soft like he was afraid to touch you, to break you.
āHold this,ā Steve placed a gauze pad on one of the wounds, his fingers guiding your hand to rest over it, holding it in place. He ignored the tingle in his fingers as his skin brushed yours, moving on to place another pad over the other blemish. Your hand came up automatically, holding it in place without Steve having to tell you again. He unraveled the rest of the gauze, slowly wrapping it around your waist, softly brushing your hands away when he no longer needed you to hold the pads in place. Steve circled it around you a few times, finally securing the gauze tightly in place with a swift knot.
āThank you, Steve,ā you whispered, his face close to yours. Steve hummed in response, letting his eyes drift to your lips for a moment too long before pulling himself away and packing up the first aid kit. He returned it to the cabinet, his shoulder brushing your leg in the process, sending chills down his spine.Ā
Steve stood then, opening the linen closet by the door, searching for a blanket to give you in case the guest room got too cold. You were tired, to the point of exhaustion really, longing to lay your head against a soft pillow. But fear came creeping in, the demons in your closet, or the demogorgons rather, holding your mind hostage. The fears controlled you then, in combination with the exhaustion, speaking words from your lips that you otherwise wouldnāt have even considered muttering.
āCan I sleep in here? With you?ā when you were first dropped off all you could think about was finally being alone, but as you sat there now, Steve's clothes covering your skin, you realized that wasnāt what you wanted at all. Steve froze, and his quest to find a blanket quickly halted. He looked up at you, taking in the heavy bags under your eyes, the weight of the past few days slumping your shoulders forward. He knew under normal circumstances that you never would have asked, and probably couldnāt have even stood being in the same room as him for more than two minutes, but these werenāt normal circumstances. And he would take what he could get.
āYeah, okay. Iāll sleep on the floor. You can take the bed,ā Steve turned to the linen closet once more, searching for a blanket for himself this time. He heard you slide off the counter, thinking youād brush past him and get into his bed, but you didnāt. You stopped next to him, pulling Steveās focus to you.
āYou canāt sleep on the floor. What if you bleed out? Iād never know if you were down there. At least not until the morning,ā Steve placed his hands on your shoulders, ceasing your seemingly endless babble. Your eyes were wide and bloodshot, staring back at Steve with a worried brow.
āOkay,ā he agreed, trying to calm himself, the jitters of being so close to you creeping in. āWeāll both sleep in my bed,ā his hands fell to his sides and you let out a breath you didnāt know you were holding. Steve left the bathroom, turning out the light as he did. You slid into Steveās bed, the sheets pulled up around you as Steve switched off his lamp. The bed dipped beside you from Steveās weight. You went to roll over, trying to face him, but you were met with pain, gasping and clutching your side with a hiss. Steve shot up, trying to help you but only injuring himself with his sharp movement in the process. You couldnāt help but laugh as you both settled down onto your backs.
āArenāt we a pair,ā you mumbled and Steve chuckled beside you. The room was dark, filled with the scent of a burned-out candle, Steve's lavender-scented shampoo, dirty laundry, and something else inherently Steve. Your eyes watched the ceiling, lying in silence next to the boy you supposedly hated. He rustled around beside you, trying to get comfortable. In a normal situation, you wouldāve snapped at him for moving the bed so much, but right now you found it amusing. After another minute of restless movement, he let out a groan.
āI normally sleep on my stomach, but this shit makes it impossible,ā annoyance laced his tone as he referred to the bat bites lining the front of his stomach. Your head turned in his direction, silently taking in his side profile, his sharp nose, and long eyelashes. He almost looked normal if you ignored the angry ring of red flesh lining his neck.Ā
āIām a side sleeper,ā you spoke softly, Steveās head turning towards your voice. For some reason, he liked hearing more about you, even if it was just something as silly as how you normally slept. āIām in the same boat as you, Harrington,ā the wounds on your sides making it impossible to lay that way. Steve could just make out the shadows of your face in the dim light. The curve of your lips, the arch of your brow, the tip of your nose. He thought you looked beautiful. āIām sorry I couldnāt stop them. Iām sorry I couldnāt stop the bats from getting you,ā your lip quivered then, tears welling in your eyes as you lived up to your crybaby nickname. You werenāt sure where the burst of emotion came from, chalking it up to the exhaustion that weighed heavily upon you. Steve lifted his head, his hand coming up to brush away your tears.
āAre you kidding? You jumped in right after me. If you hadnāt been there I wouldāve been dead in less than a minute. You distracted some of them. I wouldāve been bat food if not for you. If anyoneās sorry it should be me,ā you shook your head and Steveās hand came down to rest on your cheek, thumb rubbing circles against it gently as he spoke. Why were you letting him hold you like this? Why did it feel so comforting? You sniffled, trying to stop your tears from falling. āBaby, you saved me. I need you to know that,ā you nodded at his reassurance, too choked up still to use your words. Your eyes were heavy by then, the lack of sleep weighing in on you even more.Ā
āI'm glad I went through that gate then,ā you mumbled, words barely audible through your sleep-slurred speech. With the last of your energy, you moved, rolling onto your stomach, the wounds on your sides untouched by the mattress. Steve followed your lead, moving onto his side, and facing you. His arm draped across you, careful to avoid your wounds, and a soft sigh left your lips as your eyes slowly closed. Your breath evened out soon after, slowed inhales and exhales taking over. Steveās fingers found the bulge of the cotton pads on your side, tracing across them gently, a comforting gesture that youād never know about. He wished he had superpowers, the ability to heal you with just a touch. But he didnāt, so heād do this instead, easing your pain with a soft touch while you slept.
When you woke in the morning you had the overwhelming urge to pee. You slid gently from Steveās embrace, somehow managing to get even closer to him during the night. You tiptoed to the bathroom, not wanting to wake the sleeping boy. The large mirror covering the wall taunted you when you finished, urging you to take a peek beneath the gauze. You caved, hands gently pushing the gauze to the side. The bleeding had stopped and the gashes already started looking better. It was curious how well they had cleared up overnight, but you just shrugged, used to the strangeness of the supernatural by now. You climbed back into bed with Steve after putting the bandages back into place. You wanted another minute of peace, a moment, maybe the last of its kind, when you and Steve didnāt hurt each other. When Steve Harrington was still the boy you knew, not the one youād grown to loathe.
āShit Steve, seriously?ā You winced as the blood began to trickle down your skin. āItās a basketball game, not tackle football,ā you lost your balance for a moment, Lucasā arms shooting up to steady you. Steve stood speechless, incapable of fathoming how his hands did so much harm to you. The skin had never quite healed right, you suppose, more fragile than most other places on your body. āEddie, can you take me home,ā you asked, trying to keep your shirt from getting wet with blood, knowing your shorts were a lost cause with scarlet droplets already pooling at the waistband. Eddie nodded quickly, rushing to your side as if he had to carry you to the van.
āI can take you. I mean, I live next door. Iāll clean you up,ā Steve suddenly was able to find words, knocked out of his stupor. He moved towards you then, but you raised your hand, stopping him in his tracks.
āI asked Eddie,ā you spoke with a glare, already walking toward the courtās exit. Eddie shot Steve a sympathetic look before following behind you. Robin lifted her hand to comfortingly pat Steveās back while his mouth fell slightly agape. You got into the van with a wince and Eddie closed the door for you. Robin, Steve, and Lucas were filing off the court then. Steveās head was down while he unlocked his car. Eddie turned the keys in the ignition, started the van, and began to pull out of the lot.
It was an accident, you knew that, so why did it frustrate you so much? The same hands that once held yours as children now were the ones to lacerate your skin. Maybe it was the ache you buried deep inside, the one youād never been able to alleviate, the pain Steve perpetuated for years. The one you hadnāt been able to forgive him for no matter how hard you tried, no matter how much you wanted to. He left you, tossed you aside like you were some old sweater discarded beneath his bed, like you were nothing. It seemed never-ending like youād never escape his harmful grasp. You wanted to be five again when the world seemed so much kinder and you loved Steve Harrington. Maybe the latter was still true, maybe thatās why he scarred you more than the others ever had.
As Eddie drove towards the exit, your gaze drifted up, landing on Steve. Robin and Lucas had already gotten into Steveās car, but he stood outside of it, arms resting on the crook between the carās roof and the door. His eyes followed you through the van window as Eddie sped away. A strange look overtook Steveās face, one you couldnāt quite read. It was the look of a boy that never wanted to hurt you, but somehow constantly did.
I knew youād haunt all of my what-ifs
Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā The sun hid behind the clouds, peaks of light streaming through the cracks in the sky. Tires rolled against the pavement, making their way across town. The radio was low in the car, some Fleetwood Mac song lulling softly through the air. Your car was old, covered in dents and scratches, with windows that only opened halfway and an engine that grumbled with each press to the gas pedal. Even though your parents offered to help you buy a new one, a more reliable form of transportation, you refused. This car held too many memories in its stained cloth seats. Your first kiss in the backseat, jam sessions with Eddie, driving Will, Mike, Dustin, and Lucas to the science fair where they finally got first place again. You couldnāt let it go, not yet, not while it still had some life in it. You knew how much it sucked to be abandoned.Ā
Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā The tires screeched and squealed as you turned into the Family Video parking lot. You pulled into a space near the front of the store, dim headlights shutting off when you pulled the keys from the ignition. Robin had told you she was working today, but as you looked around you were unable to find her bike in its normal place on the bike rack. You did however spot a maroon BMW parked near the back of the lot. That lying bitch. A sigh fell from your lips, eyes closing at the thought of seeing Steve. It had been two days since the basketball incident and you had been sure to keep your distance. Steveās sorry eyes peeked through bedroom windows and only made you feel guilty for getting mad at him in the first place. But you couldnāt stall this any longer, the movies were due today and youād be pissed if you got another late fee. So you grabbed the tapes from the passenger seat, holding them close to your chest as you closed your car door and walked through the entrance to Family Video.
Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Steve stood hunched over the counter, the same way he normally did when the store was empty like it was now. His eyes were glued to the magazine that rested on the counter before him. It was a Cosmopolitan. He was ashamed to admit that he was searching its pages for tips on how to get back in your good graces. So far he was coming up short, but he still skimmed through it anyway. The bell rang above the door, signaling to Steve that a customer had entered.Ā
Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā āWelcome to Family Video. My nameās Steve. Let me know if you need help with anything,ā the words spilled from Steveās lips automatically, his gaze still glued to the magazine. It took Steve a moment to register the silence he received in response, brushing it off as another inconsiderate customer. At least thatās what he thought until a stack of tapes slammed down on the counter beside him. Steve looked up then, seeing you standing across from him with raised eyebrows. Your eyes trailed down to Steveās magazine, and his gaze followed yours. In less than a second, Steve had slid the magazine off the counter, quickly tossing behind him. You simply blinked, an amused smile blossoming on your lips as the magazine crashed to the floor.Ā
Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā āI want to return some tapes,ā you couldnļæ½ļæ½ļæ½t help the smirk that remained as you spoke, pushing the stack of video tapes in front of the boy. Steve nodded, picking up the first tape and scanning it back into the system. āWhat were you reading there, Harrington?ā he could hear your smile through your amused tone, refusing to meet your eyes as he continued to scan your tapes.Ā
Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā āSports Illustrated,ā Steve lied, ignoring the way your lips pressed together to contain your smile. You couldnāt contain your laughter anymore, clutching your sides as giggles poured from your throat. Your laughter was contagious, causing a few chuckles to spring out of Steve too.Ā
Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā āWhatever you say, Harrington,ā you composed yourself, finally ceasing your giggles, but the smile remained taut on your lips. Steve handed over your receipt for the returned tapes, expecting you to leave after clutching it in your hands, but you didnāt. Your feet drifted over to the movie-lined aisles and Steve couldnāt help but follow, tripping over his discarded magazine in the process.Ā
Eventually, you stopped in front of a shelf, Steve watched the way you studied your options. When one finally caught your attention you leaned up, standing on your tippy toes to grab it. Your shirt rode up in the process, revealing the large bandages that covered the wounds on your sides. Steveās heart dropped, the memories of the basketball game, the whole reason he had been reading that stupid magazine in the first place, flooded his mind. Just as your fingers brushed the front of the tape, seconds from getting ahold of it, Steveās hand lifted it instead, offering it to you.
āThanks,ā you said sincerely, only then noticing the kicked puppy look on Steveās face. You opened your mouth to speak again, but Steve beat you to it.
āIām so sorry about the other day. I really didnāt mean to hurt you. I just got carried away,ā Steveās gaze drifted to the ground, missing the pity that swelled in your eyes. āIām sorry this shit keeps happening. Itās just that when Iām with you I canāt seem to function like a normal person,ā he lifted his head then, catching a glimpse of emotion in your expression. Regret? Or is it that underlying anger you saved just for him?
āItās fine, Steve,ā you assured him, but the boy wasnāt comforted. He opened his mouth to apologize again, but you didnāt let him. āDude, Iām sick of hearing you apologize. It's fine. If anything I should apologize for being such a bitch about it. It was an accident, letās move on,ā Steve eyed you, unsure whether you were messing with him or not. But you were serious, hoping that the old Steve still lived within the boy in front of you, and that one day you could make amends. Maybe this was the first step, and if that meant forgiving him for something he accidentally did, then so be it. āCheck me out?ā you asked, holding the tape up for Steve to see. He nodded, going back behind the counter. He reached down, grabbing a copy of Casablanca from under the counter and placing it next to the movie you had just picked out, but you shook your head.
āYou donāt want it?ā Steve asked, suddenly wondering if you had been kidnapped and replaced by a clone. That was the only logical explanation for your behavioral change towards both him and your favorite movie.Ā
āKinda bored of complicated romances at the moment. Maybe another day,ā Steve slid the movie back under the counter, keeping it there in case you changed your mind. āI heard this one was good though,ā you gesture to the copy of Ferris Buellerās Day Off that you had picked out.Ā
āYeah, Robin said that she thinks Iād like it. Havenāt had a chance to watch it yet though,ā Steve scanned the tape, fixing his gaze on the computer, where he typed in the code for his employee discount. He did it every time you came in during his shift, thinking he was sly and that youād never noticed, but you caught on a while ago. It came to light after a rousing argument with Robin about how she had been overcharging you.Ā
You pulled a few crumpled bills from your purse, handing them over to Steve. He waited, knowing you were now going to dig around your purse until you found some coins, never willing to pay with anything other than exact change. After a few seconds, you pulled the coins out, two quarters, a dime, and three pennies. You placed them gently in Steveās extended hand. His palm tingled with the brush of your fingers, quickly sorting the coins to alleviate the sensation. He handed you the bag with your tape when he finished putting your change away. With a small smile, you turned, heading back towards the door you entered through. Just as you were about to place your hand on the large handle and push it open, you stopped. Steve, who had been watching as you walked away, felt that dreaded sense of hope again, the one he felt so often when you were near.
āWhat time do you get done here?ā Steveās eyebrows raised, taken aback by your question. His mouth opened, fumbling for words as he checked his watch.
āThirty-two minutes. Why?ā you chuckled at his sudden nervousness. Maybe he really had come a long way from his days as King Steve. King Steve never wouldāve struggled like this when talking to a girl.
āDo you want to watch this with me?ā you held up the bag that housed the Ferris Bueller VHS, extending an olive branch. Steveās response was immediate like he didnāt even need to think about it.
āYes,ā it was a simple answer, but you just nodded in return, a shy smile creasing the corners of your mouth. āWe can watch it at my place. My TV is bigger,ā Steve smirked, regaining his charming and flirty tone, the one youād gotten so familiar with as a result of all the teasing. You rolled your eyes at the innuendo, smile still cresting your lips, and pushed your way through the exit.
āWhatever you say, Harrington,ā you called out behind you, repeating the same words from earlier. Steve laughed, watching your retreating figure, the sway of your hips, and the swell of your ass. He looked at his watch again, still displaying the same time as when he had checked just moments before. Steve groaned into his hands. This was going to be the longest thirty-two minutes of his life.Ā
You were enveloped in a book, sitting on your window bench when a light tap sounded off next to you. Thinking it was just the old house creaking or something, you ignored it, eyes scanning the next page. Thatās when it happened again, and again, and again. You pulled back your curtains and flung open the window only to narrowly avoid getting smacked in the face by a pebble.
āShit, sorry,ā Steve swore, his cheeks turning red with guilt and embarrassment. He was standing below your window, pebbles spilling out of his hand. A week or two ago, hell maybe even a few days ago, you wouldāve gone off on him, screaming about nearly hurting you and potentially damaging your window. But now, you just smiled, taking in the sight of the boy next door. Only Steve Harrington could make a romantic gesture nearly turn into a trip to the hospital. āI tried to leave you a message, but your curtains were closed,ā you glanced over to his window, spotting the piece of loose leaf taped to it with the words ācome over?ā scrawled in black ink.
āGive me two seconds,ā you pulled your head back inside, closing the window behind you. As you did, a few of the army men on your window sill fell on their sides, no longer facing the window across the gap between two houses. Snagging the video tape from your desk, you ran down the steps, stopping in front of the mirror hung up in the hallway. Why did you suddenly care how your hair looked around Steve? Brushing off the thought, you continued, opening the front door to be met by the boy next door.Ā
āReady?ā he asked and you nodded, following as he turned towards his house. You walked closely behind him, catching a whiff of hairspray, lavender, and cologne. Steve led you to the rec room in the basement, which housed the largest television in the Harrington residence. You handed him the tape and he slid it into the VCR before settling on the couch, a good two feet from where you sat. Neither of you mentioned the distance, just watching the movie and laughing at Ferrisā goofy antics.
As the movie progressed a chill ran through you, goosebumps prickling your skin. The Harringtonās seemingly liked to keep their basement ice cold. Steve noticed and pulled down the blanket that was draped over the back of the couch. He laid it on his lap, extending the end of it towards you. You accepted his silent invitation, closing the gap and sitting close with the blanket wrapped around the two of you. The rest of the movie was spent that way, thighs brushing against one another when either of you moved.
When the credits finally ended, with Ferris Bueller in his bathrobe disappearing from the screen one last time, you felt at ease. You hadnāt expected to feel so comfortable with Steve, but it was almost a relief that you managed to get through a whole movie without wanting to kill him.
āThat was so good. Robin was totally right, I loved it. I'm basically Ferris Bueller so it makes sense I guess,ā Steve shrugged and you couldnāt hold back the laugh that bloomed from your lips at his comment. Steve turned to look at you, a brow arched in confusion at your humor. āWhat?ā he asked bluntly, a hint of amusement on his face.
āYou would think that youāre Ferris,ā you spoke, looking smug. Steve's lips stretched into a daring grin, curiosity getting the best of him.
āOkay, if Iām not Ferris then who am I?ā Steve leaned in close and you rolled your eyes, shoving his shoulder.
āItās so obvious that youāre Cameron. Sure, the people that donāt know you that well might think youāre Ferris, but I know you Steve Harrington, and youāre Cameron fully and completely,ā your grin widened with Steveās look of exasperation. His hand flew to his chest in mock offense.
āWhat the hell makes me Cameron?ā his words still had the air of joviality behind them despite his faux wounded front. The corner of your lips faltered then, suddenly reluctant to divulge more about your characterization of the boy before you. You didnāt want to tell him what he already knew, that he and Cameron shared a strained relationship with their fathers, both all too afraid of disappointing the men who raised them. That up until recently both boys took all the shit that their fathers gave them, too freighted to stand up to them. You didnāt want to say any of it, which was fine because Steve already knew. From the second Cameron appeared on the screen, the voice in the back of Steveās head pointed out each similarity that they shared. Silence settled over the two of you, smiles fading in the quiet room.
āIf it makes you feel better,ā you began, voice small and fingers fidgeting on your lap. Steve wanted to reach over and grab them, encase your fingers with his, but he restrained himself. āCameron was my favorite character in the movie,ā you nodded towards the TV screen that now reflected a blank blue shadow over the pair of you. Steve observed your bashful demeanor, thinking about how cute you looked when you got all shy.Ā
āYou would definitely be Jeanie,ā Steve asserted, breaking through the uncomfortable quiet. Your jaw dropped at the comparison and the smile returned to Steveās lips at your reaction.
āFerrisās bitchy sister?ā Steve nodded and you shoved him again. He righted himself, continuing to make his point.
āI mean, come on, itās so obvious,ā Steve repeated your words from earlier and you shook your head. āYouāre both a little crazy in a hot way. Not to mention you both go for bad boys,ā you glared at Steve, but he could tell you werenāt actually mad.
āIām not into bad boys, asshole,ā you defended and Steveās smirk grew, his rebuttal already concocted in his head.
āOh really? So it wasnāt you that hooked up with Billy Hargrove at Tinaās Halloween party two years ago?ā your jaw dropped again, and Steveās snickering filled the air. He reached over, pressing your chin up to close your mouth. You brushed his hand off of you in confusion.
āHow the hell do you know about that?ā you asked, confusion and curiosity coursing through your thoughts. āDid Eddie tell you? I swear to god Iām never telling him anything ever again,ā you crossed your arms, waiting for Steve to talk.
āHargrove used to brag about it to me and try to rub it in my face,ā Steve informed you and your face wrinkled, filled with questions. āI guess he thought that it would make me mad since you and I used to be friends or whatever,ā Steve shrugged, no longer smiling. He watched you, unsure how you would react to his explanation.Ā
āDid it?ā you questioned, and Steve shrugged again. He didnāt want to tell you that it did, that it took every fiber of his being to restrain himself from punching the blond boyās stupid face.
āA little,ā Steve lied and another silence fell over the room, but it wasnāt as tense this time. Steve waited a moment before speaking again, watching the way you avoided his gaze. āWhyād you even hook up with him? I thought you hated him,ā Steveās voice was quiet, unwilling to break through the low noise barrier that settled between you.
āYou stole my copy of Pride and Prejudice,ā you let out a sigh, gaze shifting to your hands that rested in your lap again. Steveās brow furrowed, confused about the correlation between his question and your response. āIt was the copy my grandma gave me when I was 11. I had notes in the margins on just about every page. You took it from my bag in homeroom the day before the party and refused to give it back,ā Steve knew what you were talking about. He couldnāt remember why he took it, but he knew that he still had it, tucked away in his closet, in a spot that only he could find.
āBut what does that have to do with Billy?ā Steve still didnāt understand. Your hands ran over your face as you let out a sigh.
āYou hated him and he hated you. I figured the enemy of my enemy was my friend, which wasnāt true by the way. I was super pissed about the book and a little tipsy. I needed to blow off some steam, so one thing led to another and we hooked up in his car after the party,ā you were ashamed of it, regret filling you the second it was over. āI didnāt know that he was such a douchebag when it happened. If I had known how badly he treated Max and Lucas then I never wouldāve done it,ā you explained, still unable to meet Steveās gaze, embarrassed by your past. Steveās hand extended, tilting your chin with his finger, allowing your eyes to finally meet his.
āI shouldn't have taken your book, Baby,ā Steve whispered and you gave him a soft smile in return. The nickname rang through the air and reverberated off the walls. Hearing it didnāt bother you for some reason. For the first time in years, the word didnāt sting as it fell from Steveās lips. Maybe the tide finally turned, the war nearly over. It gave you a sense of courage, making you brave enough to let your next question out in the open.
āWhen Billy bragged about it, what did he say?ā Steve was taken aback, wondering why you would want to know. Billyās words were far from nice, if anything they were disrespectful and an invasion of privacy. But the way you looked at Steve now told him that you genuinely wanted to know, needed to know.
āIt was really depraved stuff, like how your body felt against him,ā Steve started and you nodded, motioning with your hands for him to continue. āHe said you would start to breathe heavily when he kissed your neck. That you did this thing with your tongue when you kissed that felt insanely good. He said you moaned his name like it was made just for you to say it. That your thighs shook when youā¦ā Steve trailed off, face flushed and unwilling to finish his sentence. He had started speaking slower with each sentence, despite the racing of his heart. The tension floated thick in the air, crowding the room and making it way too hot for the blanket draped over your lap. Steve wasnāt sure when his hand had dropped to your lap, brushing between your legs from over the blanket.
Your eyes were glued to Steveās, unaware of the distance that disappeared between you with each passing second. His breath mingled with yours, tingling against your skin. Your tongue darted out, bringing moisture to your dry lips. The heat between your thighs ached to be relieved, wishing Steveās hand would travel higher up your thigh as his jeans tightened at the sight of your gaze alone. The blue from the TV screen that coated the room disappeared as your eyes fluttered shut. Both sets of lips were centimeters from meeting in the middle when the VCR popped out the tape, landing with a loud smack on the ground. Steve had leaned on the remote while moving closer toward you, accidentally pressing the eject button. He knew he needed to fix the VCR, worried about its tendency to spit out tapes rather than the slow half push it was supposed to do, but heād put it off, too tired after a long day of work. You broke apart at the sound, creating more distance as you moved the blanket from your legs and scrambled back, Steveās hand falling into the now empty space. Neither of you could look up at the other.
āI wish we stayed friends when we were in middle school,ā Steve said after a long span of silence. He never wanted to be your enemy, never wanted to drive you into the arms of an undeserving man. Your eyes met then, his were glassy, which was something you hadnāt expected.Ā
āYeah, me too,ā your voice was small but sure, words speaking nothing but the truth. You didnāt remind him why you werenāt, something you wouldāve done a week ago. Instead, you sat in agreement, pondering how different your life would be.
āI wonder what would've changed,ā he spoke. It was soft, almost a whisper, and you longed to be close to him again. To feel his words fan across your lips instead of the empty space beside you. āIf I wouldāve been friends with Tommy, if I wouldāve dated Nancy, if weād be off at a college somewhere instead of this shithole town,ā Steve was louder now, melancholy mixed with underlying anger. Even if you were finally able to be friends now, Steve couldnāt help but think about the time he missed out on with you and all the other lingering what-ifs.Ā
āWe could still get out one day. Leave the teen angst and trauma behind,ā you sounded normal again, reassuring to Steveās overactive thoughts. āMaybe we could go together,ā Steveās heart leaped out of his chest at your words, but he reeled it back in. It was still new, being able to talk without words slicing into the otherās skin. You looked at him with anticipatory eyes, awaiting his response.
āJust give me the signal Baby and we can be out of here before sunrise,ā Steve extended his hand, this was a deal to shake on, a long-term agreement that one day youād run away together. You grinned, accepting his outstretched hand, wondering about where youād go. Considering if you were in love with Steve Harrington, if you always had been. Dying to know if he was in love with you too.
A friend to all is a friend to noneĀ
Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Autumn had officially begun, a chill in the air that persuaded the orange leaves to tumble from the trees. It was your favorite time of year, though you couldnāt help the twinge of sadness that swelled in your heart at the thought of leaving the warm summer sun behind. Eddie insisted that you come to visit him at work, his desperation ringing out through the static of the phone. After a few minutes of groveling, you caved and agreed to go, which is how you ended up banished to the backseat of Steveās car on the way to the record store on main street. Robin had called shotgun, but you didnāt mind, having the entire backseat to yourself and stretching out your legs. Steveās car smelled like pine trees and leather, hairspray and cologne, as it rolled along the pavement.Ā
Steve pulled up to a parking spot in front of the record store, placing his hand on the passenger seat headrest as he threw the car in reverse. He turned his head towards the carās rear, watching carefully as he backed into a spot, shooting you a wink before he faced the front again. You couldnāt help the warmth that spread over your cheeks, feeling like a bumbling schoolgirl with a crush. Ever since your movie night, your almost kiss, things had been different with Steve. Sure, there was still some teasing and the typical dirty innuendos, but it didnāt sting the way it used to. It didnāt evolve into slammed windows and drawn curtains, loud arguments and bruised egos. Something new coursed through your veins, your heart beating just to hear the sound of his voice. It was scary, the rush of feelings that youād seemingly repressed for years, hidden under what you thought was hate.Ā
āYou coming or what?ā Robin leaned back into Steveās car to face you. The thoughts of Steve had distracted you and you only now noticed that they had already exited the car. You followed suit, unbuckling and sliding across the seat to get out on Steveās side. He greeted you with an arm slung around your shoulder, purposely messing up your hair in the process. You swatted at him, smoothing your hair back down as you walked through the storeās entrance together. Music wafted down from the speakers that littered the ceiling and you instantly knew that Eddie had picked out whatever metal song was playing. As if he could hear the mention of his name in your thoughts, Eddie appeared in front of you, grabbing ahold of your wrist and dragging you towards the front counter. Meanwhile, Robin and Steve headed towards the back, searching for some Abba vinyl that Steve had been wanting for ages. The absence of Steveās arm around your shoulder left you with a chill, the tingle brought on by his touch subsiding, but you brushed it aside following the long-haired boy.Ā
You went behind the counter with Eddie, hopping up to sit in the space between the cash register and the pile of records stacked to the left. It was a familiar spot for you, somewhere youād sat a million times, much to Eddieās managerās dismay. In this spot, youād talk about dates that you went on, someone from high school who got knocked up or married, a new song Eddie was working on, and your hatred for Steve Harrington. But this time was different. Eddie remained silent as you perched before him, crossing his arms over his chest and peering at you with knowing eyes. He came to stand in front of you, his stomach brushing against your knees. You glared at him in response, already knowing the words that were about to crest his lips.
āYou and Harrington have been awfully close lately,ā a smirk danced across his face, arms uncrossing, hands landing to rest on your knees. You narrowed your eyes, placing your hands behind you, and leaning back on them.
āWeāre sort of friends now, I guess,ā you shrugged and Eddie leaned in even closer, pressing the back of his hand to your forehead as if he was testing your temperature. You smacked his hand away, earning a yelp in response. The grin reappeared on Eddieās lips as he shook his hand to alleviate the pain caused by your slap.Ā
āFriends, huh?ā you nodded as his question, eyeing Eddie for his next move. Someone entered the store, the chime of the bell over the door alerting the both of you. But the two of you didnāt flinch, didnāt even spare the new customer a glance, too enveloped in your weird standoff staring contest. Instead, Eddie called out his standard greeting, welcoming the person to Rad Records, as his eyes roamed over you, searching for an unspecified answer. āJust friends, nothing more?ā Eddie finally continued, needing more evidence to make his case, to find the answer to his unasked question. And you gave it to him, eyes darting away from his and legs beginning to bounce. Eddieās jaw dropped, a gasp seeping from the open space between his lips.
āShut the fuck up, Edward,ā you rushed out, clamping your hand over his slack jaw. Eddieās wide eyes trailed from you to Steve and back. His lips moved behind your hand, trying to speak, but you shushed him, refusing to let go until he calmed down. You cringed at the swipe of his tongue against your palm, but still held on tight. After a few seconds, Eddie stopped and you took it as a sign to set him free. Your hand retracted, falling limply onto your lap, where you wiped his saliva onto your jeans.
āHoly shit. You like him. You actually, consciously, like him,ā Eddie whisper-yelled at you and it took a considerable amount of effort to not spontaneously combust at his words. Itās one thing to finally admit it to yourself, itās another to hear it spoken out loud. Still, you felt like there was a ritual you had to play along with, like you had to deny the accusation.
āI so do not,ā you spoke stubbornly, but Eddie could hear the give in your voice, knowing the truth.
āYou totally do. The fact that itās taken you this long to realize is insane,ā Robin spoke up from behind you, startling you with her sudden appearance. You looked beside her, expecting to see Steve, but he wasnāt there. You didnāt know whether to be sad or relieved by his absence from the conversation.
āWhere is Steve anyway?ā you shifted on the counter, making space for Robin to rest her elbows next to you. Robin nodded towards the back of the store. Steveās figure was obscured by the towering displays that littered the room.
āSome guy that he knew from the basketball team came in and started talking to him. Steve called him Jumpy or something. I dipped out as soon as I could, so Steveās stuck back there now,ā you cringed at the name that fell from Robinās lips. Jumpy was the dumbass nickname of Allen Peterson, some douchebag that was friends with Tommy.
āUgh, he and Tommy once broke into the girlās locker room during gym and stole my clothes. I had to walk around in my gym uniform for the rest of the day. It was humiliating,ā a frown bloomed on your lips, one that was echoed by Eddie and Robin.Ā
āI remember that. They somehow never got caught,ā Eddieās eyes trailed to the back of the store, still unable to spot Steve. āYou want me to kick him out?ā Eddieās eyebrows raised in question, almost begging for the chance to kick someone out of the store. But you shook your head, tapping his shoulder so heād move out of the way. He did, stepping to the side, allowing you to slide down from the glass counter.
āI want to see if he remembers me. Maybe mess with him a bit,ā Eddie and Robin waved you off as you walked towards the back, the top of Steveās perfectly styled hair coming into view as you got closer. You approached from behind Steve, not able to get a good view of his face. You were still hidden, questioning whether you should continue with your plan or not. Wondering if Allen would do something to upset you, tease you, and make you feel small. But Steve was there, and how could he hurt you when the boy you loved was standing by your side? Just as you were about to take a step out, you heard something, Allenās voice.Ā
āDude, I canāt believe youāve been hanging out with such losers,ā Allenās words elicited a soft scoff from your lips. He peaked in high school but here he was calling you a loser? You wished you could see Steveās face, to know what was running through his mind, the witty comeback that was sure to leave his lips any second now. But it didnāt. All you heard was the smooth sound of his laugh dancing through the store.
āCome on, man. Theyāre not that bad,ā you brushed off Steveās weak, delayed defense. At least he stood up for you in some regard, thatās what matters.
āNah man, that Baby chick is nuts. I remember how weird she was in high school, always crying over something. Sometimes I just wanted to bend her over and give her something to cry about, you know?ā Allen mimed thrusting his hips as his words hung in the air. It made you feel dirty and violated, like he had already touched you in the way he said that he wanted to. The boy viewed you as an object, nothing more than something to be used to satisfy his needs. Your eyes bore into the back of Steveās head, willing him to speak up on your behalf. To defend you, to protect you, to punch this asshole in the face. But Steve was never good at defending you and all he did was laugh again. That irritatingly coy laugh, the one that set off alarm bells whenever you heard it. The laugh that belonged to the reigning king, not the boy you loved.
āOh yeah, totally. One good screw would straighten her right out,ā at that moment you couldāve sworn that the entire town could hear your heart as it shattered. You werenāt really sure when you revealed yourself from your hiding spot behind the bookshelf, but your eyes locked with Allenās, and his stupid smirk dropped. Steve tracked his gaze, spinning on his heels to see you, tears welling in the corners of your eyes, forehead creased, and red-hot anger coursing through you. You turned, moving as fast as you could towards the exit at the front of the store. Steve chased behind you, his hand catching your arm right after you passed through the door. Eddie and Robin looked alarmed at the sight of you both stopped before the storeās glass front.
āLet go of me,ā you spoke hotly, cursing the strength of Steveās grip. Steveās eyes roamed over you, catching the flicker of hurt that flashed across your face before you restored it to its angry glare.Ā
āI didnāt mean it. Itās just-ā Steve began, but you quickly cut him off, still trying to wrangle your arm from his grasp.
āI donāt give a shit what you meant, Harrington. I thought you changed. I forgave you for all the shit you put me through. Guess I wrong to think you were capable of being a decent person,ā Steveās eyes watered at your words, hating himself for making you doubt him and how he feels for you.
āI have changed. I donāt know why I said that shit,ā Steve pleaded, he wanted you to understand, to give him five minutes to explain himself. But Steve knew this was it, youād already made your decision, it wouldnāt matter even if he got down on his knees and begged. Heād broken your trust, said shit he didnāt mean, and now heād lost you again, the same way he did years before, the way he never wanted to again. Steve let go of your arm, giving you the freedom you asked for when you first left the record store with him in tow. Your arm felt numb, empty, without Steveās hand there, and you cursed your stupid heart for not wanting him to let go.
āI guess old habits die hard, Harrington. Stay the fuck out of my life,ā your words spat from deep within you, fire coating each syllable. Steve watched as you turned, making your way down the sidewalk and turning into an alleyway between two stores. Eddie and Robin burst through the record storeās entrance, ignoring the autumn chill that they were greeted with as they did. Steve wiped his eyes, glad to have tears clouding his vision because he was not sure he could stand to see his best friend's face as he recounted the past few minutes to her. Eddie looked to Steve, silently asking where you went, and Steve lifted his hand pointing in your direction. Eddie took off, turning the corner to the alley to find you slumped on the ground, knees to your chest and head in your hands. He approached you slowly, pulling you into him when he finally got close enough. Sobs racked your body, chest heaving against Eddieās as he held you in a tight hug, knees resting on the cement below.Ā
āI hate him, Eds. I fucking hate him,ā Eddie nodded in understanding, stroking your hair and pulling it from where it stuck to your tear-stained cheeks. āI shouldāve known heād break my heart again. I shouldāve known not to let myself fall in love with him,ā your tears soaked Eddieās shirt and he froze, stuck on the words that fell from your lips. Love. Sure, heād known you liked Steve, but love was different. Love meant more hurt. It held more weight. It meant that you set aside the past and moved on. It meant you finally gave in to the feelings that gnawed at your heart and your brain each night. It meant that Steve really fucked up.
Chasing shadows in the grocery line
Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Steveās car finally peeled away and flew down main street, signaling to Eddie that the coast was clear. He walked you back to the now barren record store, save for his co-worker Terry, who was in the back unpacking a new shipment. Eddie asked Terry to cover for him and when Terry saw your tear-stained cheeks and red puffy eyes, he agreed, no questions asked. So Eddie put you in the passenger seat of his van and sped off down the road. You didnāt ask where he was going when he passed the street that led to your house, already knowing where he was taking you.Ā
Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Eddieās van stopped abruptly in front of his trailer. Wayneās car was gone, signaling that heād already left for work, leaving the trailer empty. It was getting dark, gloomy clouds blocking the sun as the moon rose in the sky opposite it. The porch lights flickered on, illuminating the shadows of your face through the cracked windshield. You caught sight of Lucasā bike through the back window. It was lying on its side outside of Maxās trailer, thrown in haste. Normally it wouldāve made you laugh, elicit a joke about young lovebirds to fall from your lips, but right now you couldnāt even will the corners of your lips to curl into a faint smile.Ā
Eddie opened your car door, gently lifting you by your waist and placing you on the ground. You followed him inside, trailing behind him like a lost, heartbroken puppy with nowhere else to go. He led you to his room, indicating for you to sit on his bed, so you did. Eddie placed a soft kiss on your forehead, the kind a mother gives her child, and lifted your arms. He disrobed you of your heavy knit sweater, your way of protecting yourself from the autumn winds that pierced the air, and replaced it with one of his Black Sabbath shirts. You unclipped your bra through the shirt, pulling it out of your sleeve before tossing it to the floor. The action always amazed Eddie, drawing a laugh from his lips, but this time he remained quiet, too concerned over you to pay attention to much else. Next, Eddie unlaced your shoes, pulling them from your feet. You shimmied from your pants after, throwing them across the room, uncaring where they landed.Ā
With a shaky breath, you laid down, facing the wall, your back turned to Eddie. Eddie pulled off his leather jacket, shucked off his jeans, and moved towards the bed. The mattress dipped beside you, Eddieās body now close to yours. He pulled the bed sheets up to cover you both before draping his arm across your torso. You relaxed into him a bit, fingers and legs intertwining with one another. It was a familiar position, one you and Eddie had shared a million times, but his comforting touch wasnāt working quite the same as it normally did. Not when your heart hurt this much.
Eddie wanted to ask what happened, pester you with questions, and uncover the truth, but he refrained, knowing youād speak up when the time was right. His heart ached at the feel of your body shaking against his, small sobs springing from deep within your chest no matter how much you wanted them to stop. Eddie only held you tighter, his arms practically crushing your ribs as his own tears began to well in his eyes. You stayed like that for a while, long after the sun fully sank beneath the horizon, leaving the room in complete consuming darkness. The wind caused sapling branches to scrape against the window, becoming the only sound to fill the lingering silence. You stopped crying after a while, wishing you could sleep the pain away, but remaining unsuccessful in your attempts.Ā
Finally, you gave up, shifting to face Eddie, your forehead pressed to his. Breath intermingling, comforting you, letting you know that, yes, your heart may be broken, but you were still alive. Eddie studied you, unsure whether he should be the first to speak or not, but you quickly quelled that thought when you opened your mouth.
āDo you think youāll ever leave Hawkins?ā your question threw Eddie off, his brows scrunching in confusion. Itās not what he expected you to say.Ā
āNot unless the band takes off, and certainly not without Wayne,ā Eddie had thought about it before, considered moving to a big city where the lights never dimmed and the gigs would never end. But as much as Hawkins may have hated him, he could never hate it in return. Heād get sick of the city noise and never be able to sleep, craving to hear the chirp of crickets and cicadas instead. So when you asked, he was sure of his answer. But he didnāt echo your question back to you, already knowing that your answer would be a resounding yes. It would be tough for you to leave everyone behind, but you longed for something different, somewhere new to help escape the past and finally look forward to the future. Eddie was lost in thought, still wondering why you asked that when you spoke again.
āHeās exactly who I thought he was,ā it was a whisper, one that could easily be lost, left hanging in the air with no one around to hear it echo off the peeling walls. But Eddie heard it, he absorbed your words from the silent room, wanting to know more, so you continued. āI thought he was different now, but it turns out heās still the same, too wrapped up in caring about what others think,ā fresh tears sprang in your eyes, a sob tightening your throat as you spoke. āIām tired of fighting against his undying need to be liked. Iām tired of losing against it every goddamn time. Iām done,ā there was a finality to your tone, one that caused Eddie to lift his head from his pillow, a questioning look on his face.
āSweetheart, do you want me to talk to him? Figure out whatās running through his head?ā Eddie offered, but he knew the gesture would be wasted on you. Once you set your mind to it, it was done. But he wanted you to hear Steve out. He wanted you to find a way to reconcile your differences. For all the pain and confusion that Steve Harrington brought, he also filled you with joy and light. Youād been happier throughout the past few weeks than Eddie had ever seen you, illuminating rooms simply by entering them. Eddie didnāt want that to disappear, to be forever obscured by a compilation of closed curtains and avoidant gazes. But he was met with a furious shake of your head.
āNo, Eds. I mean it. No more Steve,ā Eddie nodded despite the voice in his head yelling at him to speak up and try to change your mind. It was no use. He rolled onto his back, one arm resting under his head, the other still laid across you. You shifted too, laying with your chest pressed to Eddieās stomach, head resting just below his. āI wish it was you that I loved. Itād be much simpler that way,ā youāre not sure why you said it, maybe the cloud that formed in your head from the dayās events expanded, spilling all of your hazy thoughts through your lips. It was a sad wish, an empty hurt with truth behind it. But Eddie understood, his own thoughts reflecting yours, the telepathy finally working in a way. He wanted to take away your pain in any way he could, but not like this. Not when your heart was beaten black and blue, longing for a simple ceasefire to mend your open wounds. Not when that same heart belonged to another, an echoed call through the woods waiting for the birds in the treetops to sing back with an affirmative answer. Eddie loved you, but not in the way the both of you currently wished for. An irrefutable loyalty that would consciously be limited to platonic fellowship, no romance lingering from either party in the way you held each other close.
āIām sorry, Baby,ā Eddieās whisper slid through the strands of your hair, a soft kiss placed overtop of it. Youād grown quiet by then, breath evening out as you were finally granted your wish for sleep. Falling deep into a slumber where you were still five and Steve Harrington tucked flowers behind your ears as he whispered to you about love.
Days had passed, an endless stream of the same heartache and emptiness that blended each rise and fall of the sun together, making it difficult to distinguish one from the next. Robin called you probably a million times, but you refused to come to the phone. Your parents opted to unplug the phone from the wall for a few days, growing tired of the incessant ringing. You knew she just wanted to talk about Steve, but that was something you couldnāt quite handle yet. Youād only plugged the phone back in to call out of work, letting them know you had a nasty stomach bug, not caring if they believed you or not. The curtains in your room remained closed with the little army men on the window sill replaced in their defensive stance. To you, this was war.Ā
On the fifth day of refusing to depart from beneath your bed sheets, your mom entered your room, messing with the knick-knacks that covered your dresser as she did. A custom D20 from Dustin, a kazoo Eddie gave you for your birthday one year joking about how you could be Corroded Coffinās lead kazoo player, a mixtape Robin lent you ages ago, a new pack of colored pencils youād been meaning to give to Will, and a flower that had been dried and pressed into a glittery bookmark, all littered your dresserās surface. Your mom grabbed the bookmark, admiring the way the lavender flower retained its shape despite being flattened so many years ago. It was the same lavender that grew from the ground beneath your bedroom window, decorating the grass between the Harringtonās house and your own. You watched closely as she eyed the bookmark, curiosity flooding your thoughts.Ā
āI remember making this with you,ā she spoke softly, a gentle cadence meant to comfort you, and it sort of did. āYou came running inside with the flower and insisted that we save it. You said it was too important to let die,ā she sat on the edge of your bed, bookmark still glinting in the soft glow of the lamplight. You propped yourself up on your elbows, wondering where she was going with all of this. She handed you the bookmark then, and you took it, confused, examining it as if youād never seen it before.Ā
āI donāt remember that,ā your voice was hoarse from crying. It didnāt help that you hadnāt properly spoken out loud in days, too congested with the bustling thoughts running laps around your mind.
āYou were five. And if I remember correctly a certain boy had been the one to pick the flower for you,ā you understood then, she was talking about Steve. Part of you felt betrayed, like your mother was providing aid for the enemy, but the other part of you wanted to know more, why she wanted to talk about this, especially now. āWe always assumed the two of you would be friends, lovers even,ā she wagged her eyebrows at you and the corners of your lips ticked up at the gesture. āSo it was strange to see the distance that grew between you, the pain you caused each other. Iād always hoped youād resolve your differences, and fall back into the same ease you had as kids, but I know itās more complicated than that,ā her hand reached up, brushing softly against your cheek. You hadnāt realized that you were crying until her fingers swiped over the fallen tears. āI love you, my Baby,ā her words were a whisper, gentle lips pressed to your forehead. She patted your leg through your comforter, standing up as she did. On her way to the door, she stopped, turning back to look at you. āMaybe some fresh air might help. A trip to the store?ā she suggested and for some reason you nodded, actually thinking that it would be nice to leave your bed for a bit. She smiled, making her way out of your room to grab the grocery list for you. As she rounded the corner, one foot out the door, she couldnāt help but notice the tight grip you kept on the bookmark in your hand. The flower within it that was always in bloom. Something that could never die.
You opted to go to the store alone, wanting to drive with the windows down and the music up, drowning out the overcrowded space in your head. It was nice to leave the house, to be in an open space with autumn in the air. The crisp leaves crunched under your tires as you pulled into the grocery parking lot. You were so concerned about making sure that you had the list your mom gave you that you completely missed the maroon BMW parked on the opposite end of the lot. Once you had the list, you grabbed a cart, its wheels squeaking loudly as you made your way down aisles, grabbing item after item off the shelves.
There was only one thing left on your list, a bag of tortilla chips, which was your dadās favorite snack food for some odd reason. You almost chuckled to yourself seeing how his scratchy handwriting interrupted your momās pristine list. With a squeal of protest from the shopping cartās wheels, you turned the corner, eyes roaming over the chip options in front of you. You finally found what you were looking for and stood up on your tiptoes, the top shelf being just a bit too high for you to reach. A warmth washed over you as someone leaned into your space, large hands retrieving the bag and offering it to you. Your breath stopped for a moment and you found yourself unable to move.
āIām just gonna put these in here then,ā Steve spoke softly, placing the chip bag into your cart when you froze. He looked tired, with dark circles under his bloodshot eyes. His hair was flat, almost greasy looking, lacking his usual abundance of hairspray and product. Steve watched you, the way you shrunk at the sight of him and he felt as though his heart had been torn from his chest. He never wanted to hurt you, to make you feel less than what you were. And to Steve, you were everything. Steve opened his mouth to speak, an apology sputtering from his lips, but the sight snapped you out of your stupor, suddenly springing to action.
āI told you to stop apologizing to me,ā your voice was firm and cold, nothing like the ease it held back at Family Video the last time he tried to right his wrongs.Ā
āJust let me explain, please,ā he pleaded, eyes soft, a glimmer of familiarity in them. For a moment you almost let him, finding yourself more than willing to listen to the boy speak. You were reminded of the comfort you found in the sound of his voice recently, the swell it brought to your chest. But that vanished when you remembered the way he laughed when talking to Allen, his vile words leaving your glass heart shattered across the record storeās stained carpet. It felt like a slap to the face, a cut on your cheek, a crack in your rib. You meant what you said, you were done with him. The boy before you showed no growth. He was still the same boy who called you names, taunted you in the halls, stole your favorite book, and scared off the boys you liked.Ā
āNo,ā it was stony and resolute, an end to the conversation. You pushed your cart away, leaving Steve behind, your shadow cascading over him as you did. You made your way to the register and Steve followed close behind. He got in line behind you, but he stayed quiet, unsure what to say. He only had two things in his basket, which made his checkout go by quickly. By the time he got out to the parking lot, you were still there, placing the hefty grocery bags into your trunk.
āLet me make it up to you,ā Steve startled you, appearing at your side out of nowhere. āI swear I've changed, I promise. I care about you, so much,ā you slammed your trunk closed, wheeling your cart back to where it belonged. Steve followed you, but you stayed silent, refusing to acknowledge his pleas. He stood in front of your car door then, blocking it so you couldnāt get in. āI donāt want to lose you again. Let me show you I care. Let me prove it,ā he looked like he was on the verge of tears. Part of you wanted to reach out and hold his face in your hands. The other part wanted to hurt him more, make him feel what you felt. The latter won.Ā
āYou canāt prove shit to me, Harrington. I donāt believe it, any of it. Youāre still the same stupid boy you were when we were 11, and I fucking hate you for it,ā you spat and Steveās face hardened. You wanted him to yell back at you, to prove that he felt something for you, something worth fighting for. But he didnāt. He simply stepped aside, a new slump in his posture as he let you go. His gaze followed the battered silhouette of your car as it drove off, a wisp of fallen leaves and Steveās shredded heart trailing behind it.
When you got home you stormed inside, leaving the groceries in the car for your parents to unload. You fell back into your bed, resuming the same position you held before you went to the grocery store. It took some time, anger encapsulating your every fiber, but eventually, you fell asleep, putting the situation with Steve aside as you escaped to the peace of your dreams.Ā
You awoke the next morning, groggy and sore. Rolling onto your back, you caught a glimpse of something from the corner of your eye, something that was out of place. Your body groaned as you arose, hesitant steps towards your desk, hands slowly lifting the object. It was a book, but not just any book. It was Pride and Prejudice, the copy that your grandmother gave you years ago, the one that was taken from you. You flipped through the pages, fingers tracing the words youād penciled in on the margins. Stuck between its pages was a bookmark, your bookmark, with lavender and specks of glitter decorating it.Ā
You sat back on your bed, wondering why the book was returned so suddenly and out of the blue. Your mom was the one to put it in your room, marking its pages with the bookmark, but Steve had been the one to take it years ago. Why did he keep it? Why give it back now? Was this the end? A bookend in your tumultuous relationship with the boy next door? A post-it note fell from between the bookās pages and you leaned down to grab it. Written in Steveās messy scrawl was one word.Ā
āPlease.ā
And youād come back to me
Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā Ā The note was metaphorically stuck in your head, lingering like a bad dream that you couldnāt wake from. It didnāt help that it was physically stuck to your nightstand, its fluorescent green shade haunting you with each passing glance. But you just couldnāt will yourself to throw it away. It was a life preserver tossed to you after falling overboard, a worm on a hook meant to reel you in, a last attempt to fix what had been broken, to reconcile with Steve. You meant it when you said you were done, but the ache inside you longed to be quelled. And there was only one person that could do that. The least you could do was hear him out. Find closure, nothing more, or so you told yourself.Ā
A few days had passed since your encounter at the grocery store and you finally felt brave enough to face Steve again. You knew he was home given that his car had scarcely left the driveway in the past few days. Your legs felt wobbly, knees knocking as you marched in the dark through your lawn, crossing over onto the Harringtonās property. It was late, but you knew heād still be awake, just as plagued with his thoughts as you were. You jabbed the doorbell with your finger, waiting nervously for the door to open, to see the boy that plagued your thoughts. But it didnāt. So you rang it again, and again, and again. Repeatedly pressing the button until the door finally cracked open.
āI donāt want whatever youāre selling, man,ā Steve began but stopped when he saw you, straightening his slumped shoulders. He looked worse than he had at the grocery store like he hadnāt slept in days. He let the door hang open as he gaped at you, unable to form words. You took advantage of the open space, slipping inside his house before he could stop you. Steve shut the door, turning to see what you were doing, but youād already made your way upstairs to his room.Ā
His room was pretty much the same as it had been the last time you were there, back when the world almost ended. Clothes strewn across the floor, trophies lining small shelves, movie posters galore. You noticed a new poster though, one for Ferris Buellerās Day Off. Steve finally caught up to you, his perpetual gloominess temporarily taken over by confusion as to why you were suddenly here in his house. You sat on the edge of his bed and he followed suit, worry filling his entire being. Was this the end? Did you come to say goodbye? Steveās heart beat rapidly in his chest, panic rising in his throat when you finally spoke.
āYou said you wanted to explain, so explain,ā your voice was soft and quiet, a tone completely unlike the one you used when you were mad. Steve was baffled, wanting to know what made you decide to hear him out, but he knew better than to waste what very well could be his last chance with you.
āI didnāt mean what I said in the record store. I didnāt mean any of it. I wanted to beat the shit out of Allen when he said that stuff,ā Steveās hands shook as he spoke, watching your face for any sign of emotion. He wanted to know what you were thinking, wished he could read your mind. But he couldnāt, so he continued. āItās like every time Iām around someone from high school, I get pushed aside and someone else takes control of what I say. Someone that reminds me a lot of my father,ā angry tears welled in Steveās eyes. He hated that after all these years his dad still had such an impact on him and the way he acted.
āSteve,ā you spoke up, still emotionless in your tone. But Steve stopped you, wanting to continue, practically begging you with his glassy eyes to let him. So you did.
āI know it's not an excuse, and it's so so shitty of me. But heās just there in the back of my head reminding me that Harringtonās are winners,ā a tear dripped down his cheek and it took a great deal of restraint from you to not reach out and brush it away. āI hate that I let him win. I hate that I ever betrayed your trust, that I was so mean to you in school, that I let you out of my life. I hate that I let Allen get away with what he said, that I agreed with him instead, because I donāt. I think youāre beyond perfect the way you are. I donāt want to change anything about you,ā Steve stopped for a moment unsure if youād let him continue. Little did he know that your breath had caught in your chest and extinguished any words that might have spilled from your lips.
āI never ever want to hurt you again,ā Steve continued when you didnāt say anything. āI promise, I wonāt. I want to be better, I want to be the boy you trusted when we were kids. I care about you so unbelievably much. I never stopped, not once. Please let me prove it,ā heād moved closer to you and you let him, trying your best to keep your feelings hidden from your expression. You were close to breaking, to giving in, to letting yourself be unequivocally in love with Steve Harrington. But you still had to put up a fight, to prove it was the right choice, not just a never-ending loop of pain.
āIāve given you so many chances, Steve. How do I know this one would be any different?ā you couldnāt look at him, knowing youād lose all your resolve if you did. So your eyes fell to your lap instead. Steve watched your avoidant gaze, wanting more than anything for you to face him.
āBecause I love you,ā it was firm and unwavering, a declaration spilled from Steveās cracked lips. It snapped your attention to him immediately, granting Steve his previous wish. āI always have, even when we were kids. I got confused when popularity came into play, but it was still there, in the back of my mind. I didnāt know what it was then, but I do now, and Iāll do anything for you, anything to keep you with me,ā Steve grew shy, still unable to tell how you feel. āI want you in any way that youāll have me. Anything is fine with me as long as I have you back in my life. I just canāt lose you,ā Steve finished, leaving his words in the air for you to respond. You took your time to collect your own thoughts, to steady the thump of your heart in your chest.
āSteve,ā it was soft, gentle, longing, matching the tone Steve hoped to hear. āI donāt want to lose you either,ā the words halted Steveās heart in his chest. He hoped this was it, that you loved him the way he loved you. āI want to trust you again, but you have to earn it. We can't just keep hurting each other,ā you asserted and Steve nodded wildly. You wanted to laugh at the way his hair flopped around on his head as he did it, but you refrained, simply letting a smile crest your lips instead. Steveās lips matched yours, curling at the edges, and soon you found yourselves incapable of holding back the soft chuckles that rose in your throat.
Steveās eyes never left you, admiring the smile heād so dearly missed seeing. He only ever wanted for you to be happy, only wanted you to know youāre loved. And from here on out, heād make sure that you were. You leaned forward resting your forehead against Steveās, one last ditch attempt at your silly determination to communicate telepathically. It never worked with Eddie, so why not try it with Steve, the boy you loved since you were five. It would ease the tension, tell Steve what your lips were too scared to say.
āWhat am I thinking?ā you asked, hands coming up to hold Steveās shoulders in place. His hands wrapped around you, resting on your waist, feeling your scarred skin through the thin material of your shirt. Steve scoured his mind, focusing on you, the soft reflection of light in your eyes, the way your lips were dry and cracked, the curve of your cheekbones. You were more than beautiful to him, you were angelic, bewitching, radiant. You were everything he ever wanted and needed.
āThat you like me too?ā Steve put on his smug charm, trying to cover up his nervousness. It made you want to laugh, to kiss him, to tell him the truth.
āSo close, Stevie. I was thinking more along the lines of love, but if thatās what youāre getting then, sure, we can go with that,ā you shrugged jovially, a smile stretched across your cheeks as Steveās jaw went slack. His eyes watched you for any sign of doubt, of mockery, but he couldnāt find any. He knew it then, you loved him too. Steve found your gaze, eyes whispering to him in their own secret language. Kiss me, they said, and who was he to deny them of their wish? Steve pulled you in, grip tightening on your waist as he did. Your chest was suddenly flush with his, your body now resting in his lap, lips only a breath away from meeting. It was a last chance to bow out, to give it up for good, but you didnāt want to. You tilted your chin, finally closing the gap and brushing your lips against Steveās. The kiss was encompassed by every flower heād ever picked for you, every peek behind closed curtains, every taunt and tease and fight, every innuendo, every unseen longing gaze, every utterance of the name Baby, all wrapped together. It felt like winning a game of hide-and-seek that had been called off after an hour of unsuccessful searching, a ring of smoke clinging to the air and lingering high only to be dissipated by the summer breeze, a ceasefire on the battlefield for a war that had gone on too long. It felt like Steve, and you couldnāt get enough of it. His lips danced with yours, never wanting to feel anything but the crush of you against him. But eventually, you ran out of air, pulling back enough to breathe, still keeping your forehead pressed to his.
āI think I knew you loved me because I always loved you too,ā Steveās words were breathy, softened with the heave of his chest. Your smile flashed through your heavy breaths and hot cheeks. Steve Harrington loved you, and you loved him too. It would take some getting used to, but you liked the sound of it. You couldnāt hold back any longer, leaning back in to reattach your lips to his.Ā
A moan mixed in with the kiss, grumbling up from Steveās throat. His hands shifted down past your waist, landing on your ass with a light squeeze. You laughed at the gesture, keeping your lips pressed against his, and Steveās heart melted at the sound. But he didnāt have long to linger on the feeling, because your hips rolled against his crotch, catching him off guard. Steveās mouth opened a bit at the feeling, eliciting a groan from deep within him. You took advantage of the opportunity and slid your tongue against Steveās. You did the move that you always did, a roll of your tongue against his, and Steveās fingers dug deeper into your skin.
āFuck, is that the tongue thing that Hargrove was talking about?ā Steve asked, pulling away for just a second before attaching his lips to the column of your neck.Ā
āI donāt want to talk about Billy right now, okay?ā you gasped as Steveās teeth bit into the sensitive spot on your neck. You felt heat flush straight to your core and a whimper slipped from your lips. Steve was mesmerized, enthralled with the sweet sounds you made and the way your breaths picked up.
āNoted,ā Steve spoke against your neck, sending vibrations down your spine. He worked his way back up to your lips, hand trailing under your shirt. You flinched when his hand brushed your scar, his cool fingers causing goosebumps to prickle your skin. You always had to lie to your hookups about where the scars came from, but you didnāt need to with Steve. He knew you. He had matching wounds. Steve pulled away, worried about the way you shuddered when he came into contact with the healed skin. But you just lifted your arms above your head, signaling for Steve to remove your shirt. The soft fabric slid from your skin, leaving your chest exposed. Youād foregone a bra that morning, and given the entranced look on Steveās face at the sight of your bare breasts, you were really glad that you did. His hands gravitated towards your chest, cupping it gently. Steveās thumbs came to rest on your nipples, brushing back and forth over them, evoking a delicious moan from your lips.
His mouth found yours again, and you couldnāt help the way your hips began to grind against his, craving friction to satisfy the heat pooling between your legs. You removed Steveās shirt then, and instead of resuming his previous position, Steve tilted his head down, attaching his lips to one of your nipples. You couldnāt help the pleasure that coursed through your veins, grinding harder against Steveās lap. He was hard beneath his sweatpants, and his length caught against your clit with each movement, only further riling you up. Soft moans fell from both of your lips in harmony until Steveās mouth departed from your chest, shifting to lay you down with his body hovering over you. His lips were swollen and red, wet with his saliva as he gazed down at you. He looked at you with a hunger that heād suppressed for far too long as his hands trailed down your stomach, slowly pulling down the sweatpants that rested on your hips. You lifted your bum, making it easier for Steve to take them off. Once your pants were discarded on the floor, Steveās face shifted down, hovering over your clothed cunt.Ā
āYou donāt have to,ā you spoke quietly, suddenly seeming shy and so drastically different from the girl who just rolled her tongue into Steveās mouth.
āTrust me, Baby, I want to. I want to so fucking bad, have for a long time,ā Steveās eyes found yours, but he didnāt move from his spot between your thighs. His breath fanned over your skin, only adding more heat between your legs. He placed small kisses on your inner thighs and your back arched at the sensation. Steve truly had waited a long time to do this, thought about it late at night while his hand fisted his cock, so he was going to savor every second. His fingers dragged over your panties, drawing little stars over the material. You threw your head back, unable to contain yourself as a result of Steveās teasing.
āPlease Stevie, need you so bad,ā you begged, breath coming out ragged and labored. Steve smirked up at you, finally hooking his fingers into the cotton material and yanking them off. He lowered himself further, breath now fanning over your exposed heat. Steve wasted no time, licking into your cunt, flexing his tongue with each flick back and forth through your wet folds. You gasped as he held down your thighs, holding them tightly around his head. His tongue was persistent, like a starved man eating for the first time in days. Steveās hips rutted against the mattress, so turned on by the noises you made, the way you tasted, how you felt against his tongue. It got to a point where you could hardly keep still, squirming wildly beneath Steveās steel grip, and he knew you were close.
His mouth came up to your clit, sucking it with enough force to make you whine out his name. He could come at just the sounds you made, but he held back, keeping his focus on your core and the shake that slowly began in your thighs. The coil that had been building in the pit of your stomach snapped, a wave of pleasure flooding through you. Steve lapped at your folds, capturing the last of your arousal on his tongue as you came down from your high, chest heaving and thighs quaking.
āFuck, that was the hottest thing Iāve ever seen,ā Steve ran a hand through his hair, shifting up to place a kiss to your lips. You tasted yourself on him, a whimper escaping you in response. Without breaking the kiss, your hands came down, fumbling to rid Steve of his sweatpants, but he stopped you.Ā
āI wanna return the favor, Stevie. Wanna make you feel good too,ā you spoke between kisses and Steve pulled away, hastily shaking his head.Ā
āYou do that now and itāll be all over. Iād rather come inside you, Baby,ā Steve's eyes asked you for permission, wanting more than anything to be buried inside you. You understood what he meant and nodded eagerly, the idea reigniting the heat between your thighs. Steve got up quickly, pulling his pants from his legs. You repositioned yourself, now on your hands and knees, facing away from Steve. He kneeled on the bed behind you, one hand smoothing over the curve of your ass, gently finding its resting place on your waist. His lips placed a quick kiss to your spine as he took his length in his hand. He pumped himself a few times before lining up with your entrance, slowly pushing in with a wrecked moan. Your walls stretched around him, squeezing his length as he bottomed out. You couldnāt help the faint pants that fell from your lips at the feel of being so full.Ā
āFuck, Steve, so big,ā you whined, arms weakly holding you in place. He chuckled behind you, trying to keep from blowing his load right then and there. You were so tight, your walls surrounding him perfectly. He slowly started to move, pulling his hips out gently and pushing himself back in. Steve was practically growling at the sensation of your walls clasped so close around him. As you both adjusted, Steve sped up, his hips bouncing quickly off the curve of your ass. It was hot and wet, hard and deep, the sound of skin slapping together filled the room.Ā
āTaking me so good, Baby. Wanna hear those pretty sounds. Making āem just for me, right?ā Steveās breath was labored, trying hard to hold on as his fingers dug into your hips. You complied with Steveās request, letting your stifled whimpers echo throughout the room. Steve pulled you up then, your back pressed to his front as your ass bounced off his thighs. He thrusted up into you and his hands came up to fondle your breasts. āTell me youāre close, Baby. I canāt hold on much longer,ā he muttered in your ear, ending his statement with another shaky groan. You nodded, the back of your head moving against his shoulder as you did. He quickened his pace then, using every last ounce of reserve that he had to pound into you, bodies pressing together. Your face scrunched in pleasure and Steveās followed, both of you toeing the edge of blinding pleasure.Ā
āFuck, Stevie. Love you so much,ā you moaned through ragged breaths, hand coming behind his head in an attempt to pull his lips to yours. The words you spoke and the crash of your lips against his had Steve coming undone. His hot streams of cum coated the inside of your walls, triggering your own high, cries of Steveās name muffled by the taste of his swollen lips. You sunk back down onto his lap as he finally ceased his movements, resting on the back of his heels, still buried deep within you. His eyes met your soft gaze and he couldnāt help the uptick of his lips. You loved him and thatās all that mattered to him now.
The two of you cleaned yourselves up, slowly redressing to various degrees. Steve pulled on the boxers that were lost in his sweatpants while you draped your oversized shirt back over your frame. You gave up on trying to find your panties, accepting that they were now lost in the mess of Steveās cluttered bedroom floor. You fell back into bed with Steve, rolling on your side to face him, the bed sheets draped over you. Steveās legs brushed against yours, slowly intertwining until one of your legs rested between both of his. You caught sight of a cherry stem resting on his nightstand, one that had been tied in a knot, and held back your teasing remarks about him keeping it. Steve studied you, wanting to memorize this moment, each feature of your face. He wanted to fall asleep and wake up to the sight of your soft, pleasant smile as you watched over him in the same way he did to you. Eventually, Steveās lids grew heavy, fluttering closed as he drifted off to sleep, you not far behind.
When you woke in the morning, you were still tangled together, radiating heat off one another to fill the otherwise cold morning air. You nestled your head into Steveās bare chest, a soft groan slipping from him as he awoke. Neither of you wanted to get up, face the morning, and separate after a night together. The only reason you eventually did get up was because Steve had to go to work and you were sure your parents would notice your absence soon.
You went downstairs before him, waiting for him to find his car keys in the mess of his room. You shared a kiss on his doorstep, fingers tangling in Steveās hair as he pulled your hips flush with his. A whine escaped you as he pulled away, leaning down to pluck a daisy from his momās well-manicured front garden. Steve tucked the daisy behind your ear, placing one last kiss to your lips before walking over to his car. He opened his car door, stopping for another glimpse of you before he left. You smiled at him, waving him off and watching as he backed out of the driveway. He blew you a kiss before putting the car in drive and pulling away. You held the kiss close to your heart, the heart that now belonged to him, and headed back across his lawn to your own house.
The smell of coffee wafted through the air as you shut the front door behind you. Your parents sat at the kitchen table, a newspaper between them and a cup of coffee each. You drifted into the kitchen, ignoring their questioning looks, and plugged the phone back into the wall. Your parents shared a silent look, a look of relief that the storm was over, that normalcy would soon resume.Ā
You went upstairs then, entering your bedroom and pulling back the curtains that encompassed your window. You planned to leave a note for Steve stuck to the glass, the same way you used to when you were kids, one for him to find when he got back home from work. But when your eyes drifted to the window across from yours, you were met with confusion.
In place of the army of green men that once sat on the window sill was a pencil with a half sheet of white paper attached to it. A white flag. Steve surrendered, and the war was over. You smiled at the gesture before crafting your own flag to mirror the one across from you. It would be a truce then, breaking even and giving up the fight. The ache in your chest was quelled and replaced by an unfathomable warmth. There were no winners or losers anymore. There was just you and Steve, two lovers that took way too long to figure it out.Ā
You would call Eddie and Robin later to explain the previous nightās events, but for now, you sat back on your bed, Pride and Prejudice clasped in your hands. You opened the cover, eyes landing on the bookmark between its pages, mind drifting off to the boy that picked you flowers and told you he loved you so long ago. Maybe you knew him all along. Maybe he wasnāt so different after all.
You put me on and said I was your favorite
The summer sun beat down on Steveās tanned skin, sweat dripping from his brow, making a trail down his neck to the collar of his t-shirt. He wiped his forehead with the back of his hand, wishing to escape Hawkinsā summer heat. With a deep breath, Steve leaned down to grab the box at his feet, hoisting it up to hand to you. You stood in the back of a U-Haul, organizing the boxes that were handed to you. Your very sweaty boyfriend flashed you a smile before turning to go back into his house and grab more boxes.
āYou guys couldnāt have picked a hotter day to move,ā Eddie appeared in front of you, unruly curls stuck to his forehead and neck. Youād offered him a hair tie earlier, but he declined, now stuck suffering in the humid air. His arms were strained with the weight of the box he was carrying, clearly struggling more than Steve had been.
āSorry, Eds. We canāt control the weather,ā you took the box that he had brought out, placing it somewhere behind you in the truck. You brushed away the sweat that had formed above your lip and watched as Eddie shook his head.
āI canāt believe you guys are actually leaving,ā a sad smile stretched his lips as he spoke. He knew that it would happen eventually, that you would leave behind this horror story of a town and start anew. Youād suffered more Upside Down related trauma than he had, and he knew the fears that still crept into your mind from time to time. It was a good change, even if it meant leaving the people you loved behind.
āMe too, honestly,ā you looked up then, head snapping towards the sound of voices arguing in the distance. Steve and Dustin were on Steveās front porch loudly talking back and forth about how to move Steveās dresser from his room. Robin stood next to them, rolling her eyes and dragging Max towards your house to grab the last of your book collection. āIām glad it's with him though,ā you nodded your head towards Steve, who was still deep in his discussion with Dustin, wild hand gestures and all. Steve caught you gazing at him from the corner of his eye, shooting you a look that said āthis kid is crazyā before disappearing into the house, Dustin hot on his trail.Ā
āYeah, yeah, you guys are in love or whatever. We get it,ā Mike appeared at Eddieās side, his slim arms struggling to carry his box. You raised a brow at him, lifting the box from his arms with ease and he faced you with an unamused glare.Ā
āI think it's sweet,ā Will approached behind him, also unloading a box into your arms. He smiled at you sweetly, and suddenly it hit you how much you were going to miss all of them. The bickering and the fights, the tight hugs and reassurances that they would call to let you know they got home safe. The late nights spent overanalyzing every detail of some cheesy movie that youād forget the plot of by the morning. And in the background of it all was Steve. His forlorn gaze as Nancy walked you down her driveway to your car. His open curtains waiting for your lights to flicker on when you got back from work. His grand gestures as he put himself in harm's way, trying to protect you. You pretended to hate each other, but now you know that you never really did.Ā
The afternoon dragged on, the heat weighing heavy on everyone as boxes and furniture were piled into the truck. Eventually, you all finished and everything you owned was packed away. Steve grabbed a quick shower, rinsing the sweat from his body to make the long car ride more comfortable. You hugged your parents goodbye, urging them to come visit once everything was unpacked. The others still lingered, waiting to watch as you and Steve drove away. Tears filled their eyes and streamed down sweaty cheeks as you hugged each of the younger kids, promising to return for Thanksgiving.Ā
Steve began his round of goodbyes, mainly opting for a secret handshake or a ruffling of hair. Robin squeezed you so tightly that you thought she might crack one of your ribs. She sniffled as she pulled away, moving on to give Steve the same crushing embrace. Eddie stood before you, his head tilted towards the ground. You brushed his hair back from his face, catching sight of his tear-stained cheeks. He pulled you close, arms encompassing your frame.Ā
āYouāll call every week?ā he spoke into your hair, burying his face in it to hide his swell of tears. You nodded against him, your own muffled cries slipping from your lips. He pulled back then, and Steve was right behind you.
Steve placed his hand on your back, guiding you to the front seat of the U-Haul. He said his goodbye to Eddie before joining you. Steveās car was hooked up to the back of the truck and your parents planned to bring yours up with them when they came to visit.
You stood on the ledge of the truck admiring the sea of your friends that stood before you. They watched you with tearful eyes as you shot them one last watery smile and slid into your seat. Your gaze was pulled towards the side of your house, your bedroom window that sat across from Steveās. It was funny to think how close he always was, even when he felt miles away. Steveās hand brushed yours then, the tingle of skin pulling you from your thoughts.
āReady to go, Baby?ā Steve asked, reaching down to put the truck in gear. His hair was still wet, smelling of his lavender-scented shampoo. You ran your hands through it, brushing the loose strands to the side. Steve caught your hand, placing a small kiss on your palm before you could pull away.Ā
Sixth grade Steve was right, you were leaving with your things packed into boxes and a new city calling your name. But not because you were the worm girl that was running away. It wasnāt because this town had terrorized and taunted you to the point of no return. You were leaving because you wanted to, not because you felt forced out. And sixth grade Steve was wrong about you finding the love of your life once you left too, because youād already found him, and for that Steve couldnāt be happier.
āWith you?ā you questioned, eyebrows raised, hand still encompassed by Steveās. He nodded, showing you that smile that he reserved just for you. The same one he gave you as you sat on the sidewalk with dried worms newly relocated to the surrounding grass. You mirrored his look, gazing into his hazel eyes with all the love and adoration you had acquired for him over the years. āAlways.ā
#steve harrington#joe keery#stranger things#stranger things fanfic#stranger things fanfics#stranger things fic#stranger things fics#stranger things slowburn#stranger things imagine#steve harrington imagine#steve harrington slowburn#steve harrington slow burn#steve harrington fic#steve harrington fics#steve harrington fanfic#steve harrinton fanfics#steve harrington x reader#steve harrington x femreader#steve harrington x fem reader#steve harrington smut#steve harrington fluff#steve harrington angst#steve harrington enemies to lovers#steve harrington x fem!reader#steve harrington x fem! reader#steve harrington x you#steve harrington x y/n#joe keery fic#joe keery fanfiction#joe keery fanfic
2K notes
Ā·
View notes
Text
bad idea right
for @steddiesongfics July prompt using song lyrics from ābad idea rightā by olivia rodrigo
rated e | 1569 words | cw: alcohol, super mildly dubious consent because of the alcohol | tags: angst with a happy ending, post break up, exes to lovers, getting back together, sex
š±š±š±š±š±š±š±š±š±š±
Eddie isnāt afraid to admit that he makes mistakes. Sometimes, he makes big ones.
Answering the call from Steve is the first big one.
āSteve?ā Itās been almost a year since heās heard from him, their breakup being the finite end to any and all communication. āYou okay?ā
āEddie! Oh my god. So Iām out right now, and Iām all fucked up, and I was thinkinā ābout that time I got so drunk you had to carry me to my bed.ā Eddieās listening to Steve, but he feels like his soul is leaving his body. āYou remember how gentle you were? You were so worried about tripping up the stairs and you kept cussing when you lost your grip. You kissed my head when you thought I was asleep.ā
Steveās words are slurred, but Eddie can make them out fine. He was good at understanding Steve all the time, even inebriated.
āI knew you were awake,ā he gulps. Robinās gonna kill him for even entertaining Steve like this. Actually, speaking of her- āIs Robbie with you?ā
āNo.ā Eddie can hear the pout on his lips. āSheās on a date with her girlfriend.ā
Right. Sheād mentioned that to Eddie yesterday when they were texting about plans for next weekend.
Robin had refused to be split between her two best friends when they broke up, and rightfully so. She may have been Steveās platonic soulmate, but she knew that what happened between them wasnāt Eddieās fault. She made sure to spend time with Eddie when Steve was otherwise busy.
āAre you good to get home? I can send an Uber for you.ā Eddie offers even though heās sure Steve thought of that already. Even drunk, he would know how to get home.
āI can get my own Uber.ā
āI know.ā
āI missed your voice.ā
Eddie is doing his fuckinā best not to make his second big mistake tonight, but itās not going well. He knows whatās gonna happen. He knows because heās weak and loves Steve more than anything even after having his heart torn to pieces by him. Even knowing itāll only lead to more heartbreak.
āYou should get home, Stevie.ā
āMissed that, too.ā
Itās quieter on Steveās end now, like heās stepped away from whatever club or bar heās holed up in, maybe outside to get some much needed fresh air. Eddie hopes it sobers him enough to realize what heās done so he hangs up.
āSteveā¦ā
āCan I come over?ā
Eddie makes the second big mistake of the night and says yes.
-
When Steve arrives, heās a beautiful mess.
Heās drunk, but the ride mustāve helped a little. His eyes are clear, his cheeks not as flush as they probably were before.
Eddieās waiting at the door when he gets there, standing with a smile that doesnāt belong. Heās trying to be welcoming to a man who did everything to make sure he felt like he didnāt belong.
Steve is in his arms as soon as he makes it to the front door. Eddieās third big mistake of the night is wrapping his arms around him as if heād never stopped, as if this last year wasnāt the worst of his life and heās barely made it through.
āSorry I called. I didnāt know where to go.ā
And now Eddieās confused. Heās confused because Steve has an apartment of his own, one that he definitely knew how to get to even when drunk. Even if he didnāt, he wouldāve been able to call Robin to help. Or Max. Or Lucas.
And heās sure that Steveās been drunk in the last year and not called him.
āWhy couldnāt you go home?ā
āToo quiet.ā
11 months ago, almost to the day, Steve Harrington told Eddie Munson that he was too loud, too hyper, too messy.
11 months ago, Eddie Munson gathered whatever he could find in four minutes and left Steveās apartment for the last time.
11 months ago, Steve ruined a three year relationship because heād been feeling overwhelmed and didnāt tell Eddie until it was too late.
Now, Eddie Munson is sure that Steve Harrington is about to be his fourth big mistake tonight.
āYou wanna come in?ā He asks, already knowing Steveās answer.
āPlease.ā
-
Steve is tucked into Eddieās bed, curled around a pillow, mouth open as he snores quietly. Eddie watches him for a moment before tip-toeing from the room.
Robinās livid when she answers her phone.
āThis better be good. I was two fingers-ā
āSteveās here.ā Eddie interrupts what was sure to be too much information about what Robin was getting up to on her date. āDrunk.ā
āHe just showed up at your house?ā Robin sounds less mad now, more concerned, though heās not sure who sheās more concerned about.
āHe called first.ā
āAnd you answered.ā
āYeah. Well.ā Eddie sighs. āIām gonna sleep on the couch, but just wanted you to know heās safe and Iāll make sure he gets home tomorrow.ā
āEddie, Iām so sorry. He said he was just gonna watch a movie tonight or else I wouldāve suggested he go hang with Dustin or something.ā
āItās not your job to babysit him.ā Eddie doesnāt like the way she said that, but heās probably reading too much into it. āHeās an adult.ā
āYeah, no. Heās. I mean, heās fine. Itās just that we all try to keep his mind busy sinceā¦ya know.ā Robin explains, though Eddie feels even more confused.
āSince he specifically told me I was too much for him?ā
Robinās silence speaks volumes.
āEddie?ā Steveās voice is behind him and heās quick to turn and make sure heās okay. āSleep?ā
āIāll text you,ā he whispers to Robin before hanging up and turning to Steve. āYou should go lay down. Iāll bring you some water.ā
āYou too?ā Steve was blinking slowly, barely awake as he stood in Eddieās living room.
āI donāt think thatās a good idea, Stevie.ā
āIs it because of what I said?ā
Itās not the time for them to have this conversation, and itās not the time for Eddie to wish he could forget it ever happened so he can hop into bed with Steve. But he thinks Steve is probably sobering up little by little, and if he expects Steve to sleep, he may have to do this.
āYou made it very clear how you felt. Iām just trying to respect your space until I can get you home tomorrow.ā Robin would be proud of how heās handling this, he thinks. Heās at least keeping things civil even though his head is screaming at him.
āI didnāt mean what I said.ā
Eddie stares at him, tries to find the telltale signs of Steve lying. He doesnāt see any.
Steveās too tired and too buzzed to hide it.
āThen why did you say any of it?ā Eddie feels his chest constricting, his heartbeat racing the longer he looks at him. āWhy did you make me think I was too much?ā
āMy dad came by that day,ā Steveās head falls, his hands wringing in front of him. āMy dad had spent two hours telling me I wasnāt enough and that Iād done nothing but disappoint him and Iād never be what he wanted. And it wasnāt the first time, but it was after my boss gave a promotion to someone else even though I was more qualified and my head was killing me and Robin and I had gotten into a stupid argument that morning and it was a bad day.ā
Eddieās staring at him, mouth wide open, watching as the man he loves falls apart.
āItās no excuse. I shouldnātāve said any of it no matter what. Not when itās not even true. Iāve never felt like youāre too much or too loud.ā Steveās stepping closer now. āIāve always just wanted to soak up whatever energy you have. And I didnāt know how to tell you that youāre more than I deserve without saying youāre too much for what I can offer.ā
Damn Steve Harrington and his charm, even when buzzed, even when exhaustion is causing him to curl into himself.
Damn Eddieās inability to avoid his fifth mistake of the night.
He doesnāt know if he is the catalyst or if they both are, but suddenly his mouth is on Steveās and teeth knock together, and thereās a slight taste of blood on Eddieās tongue.
Thereās moans and hands against skin and in hair and hard cocks rubbing against thighs and bruises on hips.
Thereās Steveās head hitting the pillow and Eddieās mouth sucking marks into his stomach and inner thigh and the blanket falling off the bed as they try to strip out of their clothes too fast.
Thereās laughter and soft touches and nails biting into skin and check-ins.
Thereās love when Eddie holds his face in his hands as he slides into Steve for the first time in too long, and thereās hope when Steve cries out for more, and thereās passion that Eddie knows heād never find with anyone else.
After, when thereās sweat and tears and cum and an unfortunate wet spot in the middle of the bed, thereās whispers of tomorrow and the next day and apologies and promises.
It may have been a bad idea answering Steveās call, but Eddieās happy to make more mistakes if it means keeping Steve in his arms and being enough for each other.
#steddie#eddie munson#steve harrington#stranger things#steddiesongfics#exes to lovers#getting back together#angst with a happy ending
422 notes
Ā·
View notes